Selected quad for the lemma: spirit_n

Word A Word B Word C Word D Occurrence Frequency Band MI MI Band Prominent
spirit_n heart_n let_v sin_n 5,606 5 4.5192 3 false
View all documents for the selected quad

Text snippets containing the quad

ID Title Author Corrected Date of Publication (TCP Date of Publication) STC Words Pages
A52355 A brief exposition of the First and Second Epistles general of Peter by Alexander Nisbet ... Nisbet, Alexander, 1623-1669. 1658 (1658) Wing N1165; ESTC R37734 248,842 354

There are 27 snippets containing the selected quad. | View original text

call_v himself_o lord_n or_o head_n of_o the_o church_n but_o discharge_v it_o in_o all_o minister_n 1_o pet._n 5.3_o and_o here_o take_v a_o low_a title_n to_o himself_o a_o servant_n 2._o it_o be_v necessary_a for_o christ_n ambassador_n to_o know_v and_o assert_v their_o call_v from_o he_o that_o truth_n may_v have_v weight_n with_o people_n and_o they_o may_v have_v courage_n whatever_o their_o faithfulness_n may_v cost_v they_o for_o while_o the_o apostle_n know_v himself_o to_o be_v a_o servant_n of_o jesus_n christ_n he_o dare_v avow_v himself_o by_o name_n and_o surname_n even_o when_o he_o 〈◊〉_d publish_v truth_n that_o cost_v he_o his_o life_n simon_n peter_n a_o servant_n and_o a_o apostle_n of_o jesus_n christ_n 2._o he_o describe_v these_o to_o who_o the_o epistle_n be_v main_o direct_v from_o the_o worth_n of_o their_o faith_n equal_a to_o the_o faith_n of_o the_o apostle_n for_o all_o save_a effect_n and_o clear_v the_o way_n how_o they_o come_v by_o it_o to_o wit_n by_o the_o virtue_n of_o the_o faithfulness_n of_o god_n and_o the_o merit_n of_o christ_n hence_o learn_v 1._o the_o scripture_n be_v not_o only_o give_v for_o convert_v sinner_n and_o work_a grace_n where_o it_o be_v not_o psal_n 19.7_o but_o also_o for_o their_o sake_n who_o be_v already_o convert_v and_o gracious_a fine_a place_n be_v main_o intend_v for_o they_o to_o further_a their_o growth_n guard_v they_o against_o temptation_n and_o to_o fit_v they_o for_o their_o last_o meeting_n with_o christ_n which_o be_v the_o end_n of_o this_o epistle_n direct_v main_o to_o they_o that_o have_v obtain_v precious_a faith_n 2._o although_o some_o believer_n be_v more_o strong_a in_o believe_v and_o so_o have_v more_o joy_n and_o peace_n than_o other_o 1_o joh._n 2.13_o 14._o yet_o be_v the_o faith_n of_o they_o all_o of_o alike_o worth_a in_o so_o far_o as_o it_o unit_v they_o all_o to_o the_o same_o saviour_n from_o who_o the_o weak_a faith_n shall_v never_o shed_v intere_v they_o all_o in_o the_o same_o spiritual_a promise_n privilege_n and_o glorious_a reward_n and_o be_v buy_v for_o they_o all_o with_o the_o same_o price_n in_o all_o which_o respect_v the_o true_a faith_n of_o the_o mean_a believer_n be_v alike_o precious_a with_o the_o faith_n of_o the_o apostle_n 3._o the_o way_n how_o save_a faith_n come_v to_o the_o elect_n and_o be_v wrought_v in_o their_o heart_n be_v by_o virtue_n of_o the_o faithfulness_n of_o god_n who_o promise_v to_o christ_n in_o the_o covenant_n of_o redemption_n the_o bestow_n of_o it_o upon_o the_o elect_n psal_n 110.3_o and_o to_o the_o elect_a in_o the_o covenant_n of_o grace_n isa_n 54.13_o joh._n 6.45_o it_o being_n god_n righteousness_n to_o prove_v himself_o faithful_a in_o make_v all_o these_o promise_n and_o it_o come_v also_o through_o christ_n righteousness_n which_o be_v his_o do_v and_o suffer_v to_o purchase_v it_o and_o other_o save_a grace_n for_o we_o and_o so_o although_o we_o have_v it_o free_o yet_o christ_n buy_v it_o dear_a and_o god_n be_v righteous_a in_o give_v what_o himself_o promise_v and_o christ_n pay_v for_o 1_o joh._n 1.9_o so_o the_o apostle_n make_v this_o precious_a faith_n to_o come_v to_o all_o that_o have_v it_o through_o the_o righteousness_n of_o god_n and_o our_o saviour_n jesus_n christ_n verse_n 2._o grace_n and_o peace_n be_v multiply_v unto_o you_o through_o the_o knowledge_n of_o god_n and_o of_o jesus_n our_o lord_n in_o this_o salutation_n he_o wish_v to_o they_o a_o daily_a growth_n in_o their_o heart_n 1._o of_o the_o sweet_a sense_n of_o god_n free_a favour_n make_v the_o grace_n of_o his_o spirit_n to_o thrive_v 2._o of_o true_a spiritual_a peace_n flow_v from_o the_o former_a and_o carry_v with_o it_o every_o necessary_a blessing_n as_o the_o signification_n of_o these_o word_n grace_n and_o peace_n and_o their_o order_n do_v import_n and_o all_o this_o through_o their_o grow_v in_o that_o knowledge_n of_o god_n and_o his_o son_n christ_n which_o have_v faith_n affection_n and_o practice_n with_o it_o hence_o learn_v 1._o no_o less_o than_o what_o be_v here_o wish_a for_o be_v the_o lord_n allowance_n to_o every_o believer_n if_o they_o get_v it_o not_o they_o have_v themselves_o to_o blame_v for_o his_o majesty_n do_v nothing_o to_o mar_v the_o multiply_a of_o grace_n and_o peace_n upon_o all_o that_o have_v precious_a faith_n 2._o they_o that_o will_v have_v this_o rich_a allowance_n must_v not_o only_o expect_v in_o this_o order_n grace_n or_o god_n free_a favour_n first_o and_o then_o peace_n with_o every_o necessary_a blessing_n but_o they_o must_v study_v to_o grow_v daily_o in_o the_o knowledge_n of_o the_o nature_n and_o will_n of_o god_n the_o purchase_n fullness_n and_o office_n of_o christ_n so_o as_o by_o the_o usemaking_a of_o all_o heart_n and_o life_n may_v be_v change_v for_o such_o a_o knowledge_n be_v this_o through_o which_o grace_n and_o peace_n be_v multiply_v 3._o it_o be_v not_o formality_n or_o vain_a repetition_n to_o use_v frequent_o the_o same_o expression_n to_o god_n or_o to_o other_o when_o they_o flow_v from_o new_a sense_n of_o the_o worth_n and_o need_n of_o the_o thing_n for_o this_o apostle_n and_o other_o do_v ordinary_o use_v these_o same_o expression_n in_o the_o beginning_n of_o their_o epistle_n grace_n and_o peace_n etc._n etc._n verse_n 3._o according_a as_o his_o divine_a power_n have_v give_v unto_o we_o all_o thing_n that_o pertain_v unto_o life_n and_o godliness_n through_o the_o knowledge_n of_o he_o that_o have_v call_v we_o to_o glory_n and_o virtue_n follow_v the_o ground_n of_o his_o confidence_n which_o may_v also_o hearten_v they_o that_o it_o shall_v be_v according_a to_o his_o wish_n to_o wit_n that_o god_n powerful_a gr●●●●ad_n already_o begin_v a_o save_a work_n in_o they_o by_o bestow_v free_o upon_o they_o all_o that_o be_v essential_a to_o a_o gracious_a frame_n of_o spirit_n within_o and_o a_o holy_a life_n without_o and_o this_o he_o have_v do_v by_o make_v they_o so_o to_o know_v christ_n as_o to_o consent_v to_o he_o call_v they_o by_o the_o gospel_n to_o glory_n or_o eternal_a life_n as_o the_o end_n by_o virtue_n which_o be_v grace_n and_o holiness_n as_o the_o way_n or_o mean_n hence_o learn_v 1._o the_o see_v beginning_n of_o a_o save_a work_n of_o grace_n be_v comfortable_a pledge_n and_o confirmation_n to_o faith_n that_o that_o work_n shall_v thrive_v it_o be_v suitable_a to_o the_o lord_n wisdom_n power_n and_o constancy_n to_o carry_v on_o and_o perfect_v what_o he_o have_v begin_v for_o the_o apostle_n wish_v grace_n and_o peace_n to_o be_v multiply_v according_a as_o his_o divine_a power_n have_v begin_v the_o work_n 2._o to_o give_v grace_n to_o a_o graceless_a soul_n be_v a_o work_n of_o god_n infinite_a power_n there_o be_v so_o much_o unworthiness_n guiltiness_n and_o opposition_n to_o hinder_v that_o work_n in_o all_o the_o elect_a therefore_o the_o cause_n of_o this_o work_n be_v here_o make_v divine_a power_n 3._o the_o lord_n in_o the_o bestow_n of_o save_a grace_n work_v both_o irresistable_o and_o free_o neither_o can_v any_o for_o who_o it_o be_v appoint_v and_o purchase_v so_o oppose_v as_o to_o hinder_v the_o bestow_n of_o it_o for_o it_o be_v divine_a power_n that_o work_v it_o nor_o can_v any_o in_o nature_n so_o use_v their_o natural_n as_o to_o prepare_v themselves_o for_o or_o merit_v the_o bestow_n of_o it_o for_o divine_a power_n work_v by_o give_v free_o all_o thing_n that_o pertain_v to_o life_n and_o so_o the_o very_a preparation_n for_o the_o new_a life_n 4._o the_o substance_n of_o every_o save_a grace_n though_o not_o the_o full_a measure_n and_o a_o right_a to_o what_o may_v enable_v for_o honour_v god_n in_o practice_n be_v give_v at_o once_o in_o conversion_n as_o a_o child_n when_o it_o first_o live_v or_o be_v new_o bear_v have_v all_o the_o essential_a part_n of_o a_o man_n therefore_o to_o these_o to_o who_o the_o apostle_n wish_v increase_v of_o grace_n and_o upon_o who_o he_o be_v to_o press_v growth_n he_o affirm_v to_o be_v already_o give_v all_o thing_n that_o pertain_v to_o life_n and_o godliness_n 5._o the_o very_a first_o beginning_n of_o grace_n be_v wrought_v in_o the_o heart_n by_o make_v a_o sinner_n drink-in_a the_o knowledge_n of_o christ_n the_o law_n indeed_o prepare_v for_o this_o work_n by_o discover_v sin_n and_o deserve_a wrath_n and_o terrify_v the_o conscience_n but_o the_o gospel_n which_o holde_o out_o christ_n the_o saviour_n from_o sin_n and_o wrath_n have_v in_o he_o the_o fullness_n of_o grace_n and_o a_o heart_n to_o let_v it_o out_o free_o upon_o graceless_a sinner_n be_v the_o spirit_n be_v instrument_n of_o work_a grace_n for_o as_o the_o apostle_n wish_v grace_n to_o thrive_v in_o the_o former_a verse_n
another_o under_o their_o necessity_n gal._n 6.10_o but_o also_o to_o love_v the_o society_n one_o of_o another_o both_o in_o the_o exercise_n of_o public_a ordinance_n to_o which_o christ_n have_v promise_v his_o special_a presence_n mat._n 18.20_o and_o in_o the_o more_o private_a duty_n of_o mutual_a edification_n which_o be_v very_o pleasant_a to_o the_o lord_n mal._n 3.16_o and_o profitable_a to_o themselves_o heb._n 3.12_o 13._o for_o the_o apostle_n have_v exhort_v to_o honour_v all_o man_n subjoin_v this_o as_o a_o further_a degree_n of_o respect_n not_o only_a to_o the_o saint_n themselves_o but_o as_o the_o word_n signify_v to_o their_o society_n love_v the_o brotherhood_n 5._o it_o shall_v be_v the_o great_a care_n of_o the_o child_n of_o god_n to_o carry_v along_o in_o the_o discharge_n of_o every_o duty_n the_o fear_n of_o god_n in_o their_o heart_n which_o be_v a_o frame_n of_o spirit_n that_o he_o work_v in_o all_o that_o be_v in_o covenant_n with_o he_o jer._n 32.40_o whereby_o they_o hate_v every_o know_a sin_n prov._n 8.13_o and_o in_o obedience_n to_o he_o aim_v at_o every_o command_v duty_n especial_o those_o of_o their_o particular_a relation_n 2_o chron._n 19.7_o and_o be_v entertain_v by_o the_o believe_a consideration_n of_o the_o terror_n of_o the_o lord_n psa_n 119.119_o 120._o his_o excellency_n job_n 13.11_o his_o goodness_n hos_fw-la 3.5_o and_o his_o proneness_n to_o pardon_v sin_n psal_n 130.4_o all_o which_o be_v comprehend_v under_o this_o duty_n which_o season_v all_o the_o rest_n here_o press_v fear_v god_n 6._o there_o be_v a_o special_a measure_n of_o honour_n and_o respect_v due_a by_o the_o lord_n people_n unto_o those_o who_o god_n have_v set_v in_o lawful_a authority_n over_o they_o beyond_o what_o be_v due_a to_o any_o other_o on_o earth_n by_o reason_n of_o their_o place_n wherein_o they_o resemble_v the_o majesty_n of_o god_n to_o his_o people_n psal_n 82.6_o for_o the_o apostle_n have_v exhort_v in_o the_o begin_n of_o this_o verse_n to_o honour_v all_o man_n as_o if_o that_o honour_n which_o be_v due_a to_o all_o be_v not_o sufficient_a for_o magistrate_n he_o close_v the_o verse_n with_o this_o honour_v the_o king_n 7._o the_o lord_n people_n be_v so_o to_o honour_v magistrate_n as_o that_o they_o forget_v not_o the_o fear_n of_o the_o lord_n and_o the_o duty_n comprehend_v under_o it_o in_o the_o first_o place_n without_o which_o no_o duty_n can_v be_v faithful_o discharge_v to_o any_o man_n luke_n 18.2_o for_o this_o be_v not_o only_o the_o order_n of_o the_o word_n here_o but_o of_o the_o purpose_n itself_o fear_v god_n honour_n the_o king_n 8._o these_o duty_n against_o which_o the_o heart_n of_o the_o godly_a have_v some_o prejudice_n and_o the_o neglect_n whereof_o prove_v most_o offensive_a to_o the_o profane_a have_v need_n to_o be_v frequent_o and_o earnest_o press_v upon_o the_o lord_n people_n for_o this_o duty_n be_v unpleasant_a to_o many_o professor_n and_o the_o profane_a apprehend_v it_o to_o be_v so_o to_o all_o be_v incense_v against_o christian_n therefore_o the_o apostle_n have_v press_v it_o before_o ver_fw-la 14._o renew_v his_o exhortation_n to_o it_o here_o again_o honour_v the_o king_n verse_n 18._o servant_n be_v subject_a to_o your_o master_n with_o all_o fear_n not_o only_o to_o the_o good_a and_o gentle_a but_o also_o to_o the_o froward_a the_o second_o exhortation_n to_o the_o study_n of_o holiness_n for_o show_v forth_o the_o praise_n of_o god_n be_v direct_v to_o christian_a servant_n in_o which_o rank_n the_o great_a number_n of_o believer_n than_o be_v who_o seem_v to_o have_v be_v in_o hazard_n under_o pretence_n of_o their_o christian_n liberty_n not_o only_o to_o shake_v off_o subjection_n to_o magistrate_n as_o be_v show_v before_o but_o to_o their_o particular_a master_n the_o most_o part_n whereof_o be_v also_o at_o that_o time_n heathen_n unto_o who_o the_o apostle_n press_v christian_a servant_n to_o give_v subjection_n and_o obedience_n with_o all_o fear_n to_o wit_n of_o offend_v god_n or_o their_o master_n and_o that_o not_o only_o to_o the_o better_a and_o more_o equitable_a sort_n of_o they_o but_o even_o to_o the_o more_o austere_a and_o inhuman_a hence_o learn_v 1._o as_o the_o child_n of_o the_o lord_n in_o the_o mean_a and_o hard_a condition_n wherein_o his_o providence_n do_v cast_v they_o may_v be_v instrumental_a in_o bring_v some_o glory_n to_o he_o so_o he_o be_v especial_o glorify_v by_o they_o in_o their_o conscionable_a discharge_n of_o the_o particular_a duty_n of_o that_o relation_n wherein_o they_o be_v fix_v for_o the_o apostle_n have_v show_v the_o end_n of_o all_o believer_n privilege_n to_o be_v that_o they_o may_v show_v forth_o the_o praise_n of_o god_n ver_fw-la 9_o hold_v forth_o this_o to_o persecute_v christian_a servant_n as_o one_o principal_a way_n of_o show_v forth_o his_o praise_n servant_n be_v subject_a to_o your_o master_n 2._o one_o wrong_a principle_n be_v admit_v in_o the_o mind_n of_o christian_n concern_v the_o matter_n of_o god_n may_v be_v the_o occasion_n and_o rise_v of_o manifold_a disorder_n in_o their_o practice_n for_o it_o be_v clear_a from_o the_o former_a purpose_n that_o the_o mistake_v of_o christian_n concern_v the_o nature_n of_o their_o christian_n liberty_n do_v make_v they_o apprehend_v themselves_o exempt_v from_o subjection_n to_o magistracy_n and_o by_o this_o exhortation_n immediate_o subjoin_v compare_v with_o 1_o cor._n 7.20_o 21_o 22._o it_o do_v appear_v that_o the_o same_o mistake_n have_v prevail_v to_o make_v servant_n apprehend_v exemption_n from_o subjection_n to_o their_o heathen_a master_n which_o make_v the_o apostle_n find_v it_o necessary_a to_o press_v they_o to_o this_o duty_n servant_n be_v subject_a to_o your_o master_n 3._o although_o there_o be_v some_o of_o the_o great_a one_o of_o the_o earth_n give_v by_o the_o father_n to_o christ_n the_o mediator_n who_o will_v therefore_o receive_v he_o and_o subject_n themselves_o to_o he_o psal_n 72.10_o yet_o the_o most_o part_n of_o his_o subject_n and_o servant_n be_v of_o the_o poor_a and_o mean_a in_o the_o world_n who_o he_o choose_v to_o commend_v the_o freedom_n of_o his_o grace_n and_o the_o condescendency_n of_o his_o love_n which_o often_o light_v upon_o the_o servant_n and_o pass_v by_o the_o master_n for_o it_o will_v seem_v there_o have_v not_o be_v many_o magistrate_n or_o master_n in_o those_o nation_n where_o these_o believe_a hebrew_n to_o who_o the_o apostle_n write_v be_v scatter_v who_o have_v be_v fit_a to_o be_v speak_v to_o which_o make_v the_o apostle_n omit_v they_o and_o speak_v to_o their_o subject_n in_o the_o former_a word_n and_o to_o their_o servant_n here_o servants_z be_v subject_a to_o your_o master_n 4._o christian_n liberty_n do_v not_o exempt_a christian_a servant_n from_o subjection_n to_o their_o master_n though_o they_o be_v heathen_n but_o do_v consist_v with_o obey_v all_o their_o lawful_a command_n hearty_o and_o as_o service_n to_o god_n col._n 3.22_o 23._o in_o give_v due_a respect_n to_o their_o person_n as_o be_v place_v above_o they_o as_o the_o word_n here_o signify_v for_o this_o be_v here_o press_v upon_o the_o choose_a generation_n and_o such_o as_o be_v true_o free_a by_o jesus_n christ_n servant_n be_v subject_a to_o your_o master_n 5._o not_o only_o the_o immediate_a act_n of_o god_n worship_n and_o service_n shall_v be_v go_v about_o with_o much_o fear_n and_o reverence_n to_o he_o in_o the_o heart_n psal_n 2.11_o but_o even_o these_o outward_a duty_n which_o we_o owe_v to_o man_n shall_v be_v season_v therewith_o that_o so_o christian_n even_o while_o they_o be_v employ_v in_o most_o common_a duty_n may_v be_v in_o the_o fear_n of_o the_o lord_n all_o the_o day_n long_o prov._n 23.17_o for_o this_o be_v the_o qualification_n of_o that_o subjection_n which_o christian_a servant_n owe_v to_o their_o master_n be_v subject_n with_o all_o fear_n 6._o it_o may_v be_v the_o lot_n of_o the_o lord_n dear_a people_n not_o only_o to_o be_v in_o the_o rank_n of_o servant_n which_o be_v a_o part_n of_o their_o likeness_n to_o their_o lord_n for_o his_o outward_a state_n in_o the_o flesh_n philip._n 2.7_o but_o likewise_o to_o be_v by_o divine_a providence_n put_v to_o serve_v heathen_n and_o the_o worst_a of_o heathen_n that_o so_o the_o lord_n may_v make_v they_o instrumental_a to_o do_v good_a to_o some_o of_o these_o 2_o king_n 5.2_o 3._o or_o convince_v they_o that_o god_n be_v with_o their_o servant_n gen._n 31.44_o for_o here_o the_o apostle_n suppones_fw-la some_o of_o the_o choose_a generation_n and_o the_o peculiar_a people_n to_o be_v servant_n to_o heathen_n and_o to_o froward_a and_o perverse_a heathen_n 7._o although_o all_o that_o be_v without_o the_o save_a knowledge_n of_o god_n in_o christ_n be_v in_o a_o like_o damnable_a
the_o same_o hazard_n therefore_o the_o apostle_n press_v the_o duty_n of_o woman_n to_o their_o husband_n by_o such_o a_o expression_n as_o import_v a_o like_a strictness_n of_o tie_n upon_o they_o to_o their_o duty_n as_o be_v upon_o those_o mention_v in_o the_o last_o part_n of_o the_o former_a chapter_n likewise_o you_o wife_n be_v subject_n etc._n etc._n 4._o the_o wickedness_n and_o disobedience_n to_o the_o gospel_n of_o any_o marry_a person_n however_o it_o may_v draw_v themselves_o under_o the_o curse_n of_o god_n yet_o it_o do_v neither_o loose_a the_o relation_n nor_o exempt_v the_o other_o party_n from_o their_o duty_n except_v in_o the_o case_n of_o adultery_n and_o lawful_a divorce_n thereupon_o mat._n 5.32_o or_o wilful_a desertion_n 1_o cor._n 7.15_o but_o do_v rather_o tie_v the_o better_a party_n the_o more_o strict_o to_o a_o conscionable_a discharge_n of_o that_o duty_n for_o the_o conviction_n or_o gain_v of_o the_o other_o party_n for_o though_o the_o apostle_n here_o do_v suppone_v husband_n some_o of_o they_o at_o least_o to_o be_v disobedient_a to_o the_o word_n yet_o he_o press_v upon_o their_o wife_n dutifulness_n to_o they_o as_o to_o their_o own_o huband_n be_v in_o subjection_n to_o your_o own_o husband_n that_o if_o any_o obey_v not_o the_o word_n etc._n etc._n 5._o although_o the_o public_a ministry_n of_o the_o word_n be_v the_o ordinary_a and_o principal_a mean_n of_o sinner_n conversion_n to_o the_o lord_n rom._n 10.15_o 17._o yet_o the_o lord_n may_v and_o sometime_o do_v make_v use_n of_o the_o pain_n of_o private_a christian_n for_o that_o effect_n for_o it_o be_v suppon_v that_o they_o who_o obey_v not_o the_o word_n may_v be_v win_v to_o obey_v it_o by_o the_o conversation_n of_o their_o wife_n 6._o although_o the_o child_n of_o the_o lord_n be_v bind_v to_o deal_v with_o the_o unconvert_v or_o profane_a among_o who_o they_o live_v by_o discourse_n and_o conference_n commend_v christ_n to_o they_o and_o point_v out_o the_o way_n of_o attain_v acquaintance_n and_o communion_n with_o he_o joh._n 4.29_o 30._o philip._n 2.15_o 16._o yet_o it_o be_v main_o a_o conversation_n suitable_a to_o the_o word_n that_o god_n use_v to_o bless_v for_o gain_v of_o such_o to_o fall_v in_o love_n with_o religion_n without_o which_o the_o best_a discourse_n will_v rather_o harden_v folk_n in_o sin_n than_o reclaim_v they_o from_o their_o sinful_a way_n therefore_o the_o apostle_n here_o press_v practical_a duty_n upon_o christian_a woman_n as_o the_o best_a way_n to_o gain_v their_o unbelieve_a husband_n that_o if_o any_o obey_v not_o the_o word_n they_o may_v be_v win_v by_o the_o conversation_n of_o the_o wife_n while_o they_o behold_v your_o chaste_a conversation_n etc._n etc._n 7._o the_o lord_n people_n ought_v not_o to_o quit_v their_o hope_n of_o the_o conversion_n of_o those_o who_o have_v not_o hitherto_o be_v persuade_v by_o the_o word_n to_o follow_v the_o direction_n thereof_o neither_o yet_o do_v believe_v the_o truth_n reveal_v in_o it_o but_o they_o ought_v to_o continue_v their_o pain_n towards_o those_o with_o who_o the_o public_a ministry_n do_v not_o prevail_v for_o even_o to_o these_o husband_n who_o the_o apostle_n suppon_v to_o be_v unbeliever_n disobedient_a to_o the_o word_n and_o such_o as_o will_v not_o be_v persuade_v thereby_o as_o the_o word_n here_o signify_v he_o plead_v for_o duty_n from_o their_o wife_n in_o hope_n of_o gain_v they_o thereby_o that_o if_o any_o obey_v not_o the_o word_n they_o may_v without_o the_o word_n be_v win_v by_o the_o conversation_n of_o the_o wife_n 8._o the_o win_n of_o a_o sinner_n to_o jesus_n christ_n be_v a_o employment_n full_a of_o gain_n and_o advantage_n as_o the_o word_n here_o translate_v to_o be_v win_v signify_v both_o to_o the_o sinner_n itself_o who_o be_v thereby_o make_v partaker_n of_o the_o true_a riches_n jam._n 2.5_o and_o to_o those_o who_o be_v instrumental_a in_o that_o work_n in_o regard_n of_o the_o comfort_n they_o may_v have_v from_o they_o philip._n 4.1_o and_o the_o reward_n they_o shall_v have_v from_o god_n dan._n 12.3_o and_o therefore_o it_o ought_v to_o be_v manage_v with_o a_o great_a deal_n of_o spiritual_a policy_n and_o skill_n as_o the_o same_o word_n also_o signify_v that_o if_o any_o obey_v not_o the_o word_n etc._n etc._n they_o may_v be_v win_v 9_o there_o be_v no_o part_n of_o a_o christian_n conversation_n so_o prevalent_a to_o gain_v onlooker_n to_o fall_v in_o love_n with_o religion_n as_o that_o wherein_o the_o duty_n which_o we_o owe_v to_o other_o in_o the_o relation_n we_o have_v to_o they_o do_v shine_v for_o these_o two_o chastity_n which_o in_o the_o peculiar_a signification_n of_o it_o be_v one_o main_a duty_n of_o the_o wife_n in_o reference_n to_o her_o husband_n and_o fear_v signify_v reverence_n to_o a_o superior_a rom._n 13.7_o be_v the_o quality_n of_o a_o christian_n conversation_n which_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n here_o condescend_v upon_o as_o most_o prevalent_a for_o gain_v unbeliever_n to_o fall_v in_o love_n with_o religion_n they_o may_v be_v win_v while_o they_o behold_v your_o chaste_a conversation_n couple_v with_o fear_n 10._o carnal_a man_n do_v very_o accurate_o pry_v into_o all_o the_o secret_n of_o the_o practice_n of_o those_o that_o be_v religious_a which_o though_o it_o be_v do_v by_o they_o that_o they_o may_v find_v occasion_n against_o the_o godly_a psal_n 56.6_o who_o shall_v therefore_o be_v the_o more_o circumspect_a psal_n 39.1_o and_o the_o more_o earnest_a for_o god_n teach_v psal_n 27.11_o yet_o the_o lord_n may_v make_v use_n of_o it_o contrary_a to_o their_o intention_n to_o be_v a_o mean_a of_o much_o good_a to_o their_o soul_n for_o the_o word_n which_o the_o apostle_n use_v here_o while_o they_o behold_v signify_v very_o accurate_o to_o pry_v into_o and_o serious_o to_o consider_v a_o thing_n upon_o which_o the_o apostle_n may_v be_v safe_o conceive_v to_o lay_v some_o weight_n for_o move_a christian_a woman_n to_o the_o more_o holy_a circumspection_n in_o their_o carriage_n which_o the_o lord_n may_v bless_v for_o gain_v of_o their_o husband_n while_o they_o behold_v your_o chaste_a conversation_n 11._o there_o be_v no_o true_a purity_n or_o holiness_n of_o conversation_n which_o do_v not_o flow_v from_o fear_n of_o offend_a god_n in_o the_o heart_n by_o which_o christian_n depart_v from_o evil_a in_o their_o practice_n prov._n 16.6_o nor_o be_v there_o any_o true_a fear_n of_o god_n in_o the_o heart_n where_o the_o conversation_n be_v not_o in_o some_o measure_n holy_a jer._n 32.40_o for_o though_o this_o chastity_n and_o fear_n of_o christian_a woman_n here_o speak_v of_o may_v be_v take_v with_o a_o special_a respect_n to_o their_o husband_n yet_o the_o word_n be_v of_o a_o large_a signification_n and_o must_v necessary_o include_v holiness_n of_o life_n and_o fear_v of_o offend_a god_n in_o the_o heart_n what_o ever_o they_o may_v suffer_v from_o their_o husband_n the_o one_o whereof_o can_v be_v separate_v from_o the_o other_o a_o chaste_a conversation_n couple_v with_o fear_n verse_n 3._o who_o adorn_v let_v it_o not_o be_v that_o outward_a adorn_v of_o plait_v the_o hair_n and_o of_o wear_v of_o gold_n or_o of_o put_v on_o of_o apparel_n 4._o but_o let_v it_o be_v the_o hide_a man_n of_o the_o heart_n in_o that_o which_o be_v not_o corruptible_a even_o the_o ornament_n of_o a_o meek_a and_o quiet_a spirit_n which_o be_v in_o the_o sight_n of_o god_n of_o great_a price_n the_o apostle_n give_v here_o two_o further_a direction_n to_o believe_a woman_n for_o attain_v to_o such_o a_o conversation_n as_o through_o the_o lord_n blessing_n may_v prove_v a_o mean_a of_o gain_v their_o unbelieving_a husband_n the_o one_o be_v negative_a that_o they_o shall_v not_o be_v too_o curious_a and_o superfluous_a in_o trim_v their_o outward_a man_n the_o other_o be_v positive_a that_o their_o great_a pain_n shall_v be_v to_o have_v their_o inward_a man_n adorn_v with_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n especial_o meekness_n and_o peaceablenesse_n of_o spirit_n in_o reference_n to_o their_o husband_n and_o the_o lord_n dispensation_n in_o tie_v they_o to_o such_o man_n and_o to_o a_o cross_n with_o they_o which_o last_o he_o press_v by_o two_o argument_n the_o first_o be_v that_o this_o be_v a_o ornament_n that_o will_v not_o wax_v old_a as_o other_o do_v the_o second_o be_v that_o it_o be_v in_o very_o high_a esteem_n with_o the_o lord_n and_o therefore_o as_o they_o desire_v to_o gain_v their_o husband_n by_o their_o outward_a carriage_n their_o great_a care_n shall_v be_v to_o attain_v to_o a_o right_a frame_n of_o spirit_n within_o hence_o learn_v 1._o even_o the_o child_n of_o the_o lord_n be_v in_o hazard_n to_o offend_v he_o and_o other_o in_o the_o matter_n of_o their_o apparel_n while_o they_o labour_v not_o
to_o have_v the_o same_o suitable_a to_o their_o several_a rank_n and_o condition_n which_o god_n will_v have_v distinguish_v in_o some_o measure_n by_o apparel_n esth_n 5.1_o gen._n 38.14_o while_o they_o affect_v a_o newness_n and_o strangeness_n whether_o in_o the_o kind_n of_o their_o apparel_n or_o in_o their_o way_n of_o use_v of_o it_o zeph._n 1.8_o and_o when_o much_o time_n and_o expense_n be_v waste_v about_o apparel_n as_o be_v import_v in_o the_o apostle_n word_n here_o in_o all_o which_o and_o the_o like_a case_n the_o lord_n people_n be_v ready_a to_o offend_v in_o the_o matter_n of_o their_o apparel_n and_o that_o because_o there_o be_v in_o they_o much_o unsubdued_a pride_n and_o vanity_n ready_a to_o manifest_v itself_o that_o way_n isa_n 3.16_o 18_o etc._n etc._n and_o because_o they_o forget_v that_o apparel_n be_v give_v to_o make_v they_o ashamed_a in_o remembrance_n of_o their_o sin_n 1_o tim._n 2.9_o 14._o for_o the_o hazard_n of_o offend_v by_o waste_v both_o time_n and_o mean_n be_v import_v in_o this_o dissuasive_a of_o the_o apostle_n who_o adorn_v let_v it_o not_o be_v that_o outward_a adorn_v of_o plait_v the_o hair_n and_o wear_v of_o gold_n or_o of_o put_v on_o of_o apparel_n 2._o although_o the_o lord_n allow_v person_n who_o be_v in_o eminency_n above_o other_o to_o have_v ornament_n beyond_o necessity_n isa_n 22._o ●0_n 21_o 22._o and_o other_o to_o have_v more_o than_o ordinary_a at_o some_o special_a occasion_n gen._n 24.30_o and_o all_o of_o his_o people_n to_o provide_v for_o thing_n honest_a in_o the_o sight_n of_o all_o man_n rom._n 12.17_o yet_o when_o any_o professor_n of_o religion_n become_v excessive_a in_o the_o use_n of_o his_o liberty_n in_o these_o thing_n he_o will_v be_v so_o far_o from_o commend_v religion_n to_o other_o thereby_o that_o his_o practice_n will_v rather_o be_v a_o hindrance_n unto_o other_o to_o fall_v in_o love_n with_o it_o who_o may_v or_o will_v ready_o take_v occasion_n thence_o to_o think_v that_o christian_n have_v no_o better_a thing_n to_o take_v they_o up_o than_o these_o whereupon_o they_o be_v their_o time_n pain_n and_o mean_n for_o from_o this_o evil_a the_o apostle_n here_o dissuade_v christian_a woman_n as_o they_o will_v gain_v their_o heathen_a husband_n import_v that_o their_o vanity_n and_o excess_n in_o the_o matter_n of_o their_o apparel_n will_v rather_o hinder_v they_o than_o gain_v they_o to_o fall_v in_o love_n with_o christianity_n who_o adorn_v let_v it_o not_o be_v that_o outward_a adorn_v of_o plait_v the_o hair_n etc._n etc._n 3._o they_o that_o will_v by_o their_o outward_a carriage_n commend_v religion_n and_o win_v other_o to_o fall_v in_o love_n therewith_o must_v have_v their_o prime_a care_n exercise_v about_o their_o heart_n which_o if_o it_o be_v adorn_v with_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n spirit_n in_o life_n and_o practice_n the_o conversation_n can_v but_o be_v lovely_a to_o all_o right_o discern_a onlooker_n for_o the_o apostle_n have_v tell_v those_o believe_a woman_n before_o that_o it_o be_v their_o conversation_n main_o which_o will_v gain_v their_o husband_n he_o now_o condescend_v upon_o the_o way_n of_o attain_v to_o such_o a_o conversation_n who_o adorn_v let_v it_o not_o be_v that_o outward_a adorn_v etc._n etc._n but_o let_v it_o be_v the_o hide_a man_n of_o the_o heart_n 4._o those_o that_o be_v much_o time_n pain_n and_o mean_n in_o deck_v and_o trim_v of_o their_o body_n do_v ordinary_o neglect_v their_o soul_n leave_v these_o in_o a_o disorderly_a sordid_a and_o filthy_a condition_n for_o the_o apostle_n dissuade_v from_o the_o one_o and_o in_o opposition_n thereto_o persuade_v to_o the_o other_o import_v the_o inconsistency_n of_o such_o a_o adorn_v of_o the_o outward_a man_n with_o the_o adorn_v of_o the_o inward_a who_o adorn_v let_v it_o not_o be_v that_o outward_a adorn_v etc._n etc._n but_o let_v it_o be_v the_o hide_a man_n of_o the_o heart_n 5._o the_o lord_n have_v be_v please_v to_o hide_v the_o heart_n of_o every_o one_o from_o the_o knowledge_n of_o another_o who_o therefore_o ought_v not_o by_o their_o rash_a judge_n and_o censure_v of_o the_o inward_a frame_n and_o state_n of_o other_o to_o invade_v the_o lord_n prerogative_n of_o search_v the_o heart_n jer._n 17.10_o but_o aught_o to_o bestow_v much_o pain_n for_o keep_v in_o a_o right_a frame_n their_o own_o heart_n which_o be_v hide_v from_o all_o eye_n but_o god_n as_o a_o prime_a evidence_n of_o their_o sincerity_n psal_n 51.6_o 7._o therefore_o the_o inward_a frame_n of_o the_o spirit_n be_v here_o call_v the_o hide_a man_n of_o the_o heart_n 6._o that_o which_o main_o make_v the_o carriage_n of_o a_o professor_n of_o religion_n a_o mean_a to_o gain_v other_o to_o jesus_n christ_n be_v the_o exercise_n of_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n spirit_n within_o especial_o meekness_n and_o quietness_n of_o spirit_n by_o the_o former_a whereof_o to_o wit_n meekness_n they_o keep_v down_o their_o passion_n from_o rise_v against_o other_o that_o wrong_v they_o or_o against_o the_o lord_n dispensation_n in_o exercise_v they_o more_o hardly_o than_o other_o numb_a 12.2_o 3._o whereby_o also_o they_o essay_n all_o amicable_a and_o love_a way_n of_o reclaim_v such_o as_o do_v wrong_v they_o before_o they_o go_v to_o the_o rigour_n of_o justice_n 1_o cor._n 4.21_o and_o by_o the_o latter_a to_o wit_n quietness_n of_o spirit_n they_o do_v eschew_v all_o needless_a contradiction_n of_o other_o isa_n 53.7_o all_o rashness_n in_o their_o action_n act._n 19.36_o all_o meddle_v with_o thing_n not_o belong_v to_o they_o 1_o thess_n 4.11_o and_o all_o expression_n of_o miscontent_n with_o that_o lot_n which_o the_o lord_n have_v carve_v out_o to_o they_o psal_n 131.2_o all_o which_o be_v here_o require_v of_o christian_a woman_n tie_v to_o unbelieving_a and_o profane_a husband_n as_o special_a mean_n of_o gain_v they_o to_o christ_n for_o in_o order_n to_o their_o gain_n the_o apostle_n thus_o exhort_v the_o wife_n to_o put_v on_o the_o ornament_n of_o a_o meek_a and_o quiet_a spirit_n 7._o where_o such_o a_o gracious_a frame_n of_o spirit_n be_v within_o as_o the_o apostle_n here_o exhort_v christian_a woman_n to_o labour_n for_o it_o will_v have_v visible_a effect_n that_o may_v be_v discern_v without_o for_o the_o apostle_n exhort_v christian_a wife_n to_o the_o study_n of_o meekness_n and_o quietness_n of_o spirit_n as_o a_o mean_a to_o gain_v their_o unbelieve_a husband_n which_o it_o can_v not_o prove_v except_o the_o effect_n thereof_o be_v visible_a in_o their_o carriage_n 8._o the_o grace_n of_o christ_n be_v such_o a_o ornament_n as_o be_v once_o put_v upon_o the_o soul_n do_v never_o altogether_o fade_v or_o wax_v old_a the_o consideration_n whereof_o shall_v make_v christian_n more_o careful_a to_o have_v it_o in_o exercise_n in_o their_o heart_n than_o to_o have_v on_o the_o best_a of_o their_o ornament_n which_o will_v soon_o wear_v and_o wax_v old_a for_o as_o a_o argument_n to_o move_v christian_n to_o put_v on_o this_o adorn_v of_o god_n grace_n the_o apostle_n affirm_v it_o to_o be_v that_o which_o be_v incorruptible_a 9_o although_o every_o grace_n be_v the_o lord_n own_o free_a gift_n jam._n 1.17_o and_o the_o most_o gracious_a not_o proper_o be_v profitable_a to_o he_o job_n 22.2_o yet_o he_o be_v please_v to_o esteem_v of_o his_o own_o grace_n and_o gracious_o to_o reward_v the_o person_n to_o who_o he_o give_v it_o as_o if_o it_o be_v of_o much_o worth_n to_o he_o the_o consideration_n whereof_o shall_v heighten_v the_o esteem_n of_o grace_n in_o our_o heart_n and_o quicken_v we_o to_o pain_n for_o get_v and_o increase_v of_o it_o for_o this_o end_n be_v this_o adorn_v of_o a_o meek_a and_o quiet_a spirit_n here_o commend_v from_o this_o that_o it_o be_v in_o the_o sight_n of_o god_n of_o great_a price_n verse_n 5._o for_o after_o this_o manner_n in_o the_o old_a time_n the_o holy_a woman_n also_o who_o trust_v in_o god_n adorn_v themselves_o be_v in_o subjection_n unto_o their_o own_o husband_n 6._o even_o as_o sarah_n obey_v abraham_n call_v he_o lord_n who_o daughter_n you_o be_v as_o long_o as_o you_o do_v well_o and_o be_v not_o afraid_a with_o any_o amazement_n here_o be_v two_o further_a argument_n whereby_o the_o apostle_n press_v upon_o christian_a woman_n the_o study_n of_o such_o a_o carriage_n as_o may_v prove_v a_o mean_a of_o gain_v their_o wicked_a husband_n the_o one_o be_v take_v from_o the_o example_n of_o holy_a believe_a woman_n register_v in_o scripture_n who_o count_v it_o their_o best_a ornament_n to_o manifest_v their_o holiness_n and_o faith_n by_o their_o dutifulnesse_n to_o their_o husband_n and_o particular_o of_o sarah_n who_o testify_v her_o obedience_n to_o her_o husband_n by_o her_o respective_a and_o reverend_a language_n to_o he_o
the_o service_n of_o their_o lust_n but_o employ_v the_o same_o whole_o in_o obedience_n to_o the_o lord_n that_o they_o have_v spend_v so_o much_o thereof_o in_o the_o slavery_n of_o sin_n already_o and_o have_v be_v at_o so_o great_a a_o height_n in_o wickedness_n for_o the_o time_n pass_v of_o our_o life_n may_v suffice_v we_o to_o have_v wrought_v the_o will_n of_o the_o gentile_n when_o we_o walk_v in_o lasciviousness_n lust_n etc._n etc._n 3._o jesus_n christ_n have_v suffer_v for_o and_o confer_v his_o save_a grace_n upon_o some_o of_o the_o vile_a of_o the_o child_n of_o man_n that_o he_o may_v proclaim_v his_o grace_n and_o love_n to_o be_v most_o free_a by_o bestow_v it_o upon_o they_o who_o have_v nothing_o in_o they_o but_o what_o be_v loathsome_a in_o his_o sight_n and_o most_o powerful_a in_o come_v over_o and_o do_v away_o so_o much_o vileness_n and_o adorn_v the_o soul_n where_o it_o be_v with_o his_o beautiful_a grace_n for_o the_o apostle_n clear_o suppose_v here_o himself_o and_o other_o convert_v for_o who_o christ_n have_v suffer_v in_o the_o flesh_n to_o have_v be_v real_o such_o as_o be_v here_o describe_v work_v the_o will_n of_o the_o gentile_n walk_v in_o lasciviousness_n lust_n excess_n of_o wine_n etc._n etc._n 4._o it_o do_v much_o concern_v all_o true_a convert_v to_o entertain_v in_o their_o heart_n the_o lively_a apprehension_n of_o the_o several_a step_n of_o their_o former_a vileness_n wherein_o they_o have_v wallow_v themselves_o before_o their_o conversion_n that_o they_o may_v be_v still_o vile_a in_o their_o own_o eye_n consider_v how_o dishonourable_a to_o god_n they_o have_v sometime_o be_v and_o may_v have_v their_o heart_n frequent_o raise_v in_o the_o praise_n of_o he_o who_o have_v gracious_o pardon_v and_o powerful_o change_v they_o 1_o tim._n 1.13_o etc._n etc._n and_o may_v manifest_v much_o compassion_n and_o meekness_n in_o their_o carriage_n towards_o those_o who_o yet_o remain_v in_o that_o condition_n wherein_o themselves_o once_o be_v tit._n 2.2_o 3._o for_o here_o the_o apostle_n represent_v to_o his_o own_o heart_n and_o the_o heart_n of_o other_o convert_v the_o several_a branch_n of_o that_o profane_a disposition_n and_o course_n wherein_o they_o have_v live_v before_o their_o conversion_n to_o wit_n that_o they_o have_v wrought_v the_o will_n of_o the_o gentile_n walk_v in_o lasciviousness_n lust_n excess_n of_o wine_n etc._n etc._n 5._o true_a penitent_n will_v not_o stand_v to_o proclaim_v and_o aggreage_fw-mi their_o own_o vileness_n when_o it_o may_v serve_v for_o the_o glory_n of_o christ_n free_a grace_n in_o pardon_v and_o change_v of_o they_o and_o may_v provoke_v other_o to_o mortification_n and_o holiness_n for_o here_o the_o apostle_n put_v himself_o in_o the_o catalogue_n of_o these_o who_o have_v walk_v in_o lasciviousness_n lust_n excess_n of_o wine_n etc._n etc._n 6._o they_o who_o will_v reflect_v aright_o upon_o their_o disposition_n and_o carriage_n before_o their_o conversion_n shall_v not_o only_o make_v their_o more_o gross_a practice_n but_o the_o very_a inward_a motion_n and_o lust_n of_o their_o heart_n towards_o those_o sin_n which_o possible_o they_o have_v never_o commit_v and_o consider_v with_o what_o strong_a bensell_n of_o spirit_n they_o have_v be_v incline_v to_o or_o do_v commit_v those_o iniquity_n and_o call_v to_o mind_v the_o several_a sort_n of_o their_o sin_n against_o both_o table_n of_o the_o law_n such_o as_o their_o abuse_n of_o god_n good_a creature_n to_o be_v fuel_n to_o their_o lust_n their_o follow_v the_o example_n of_o other_o their_o serve_v of_o other_o or_o harden_v of_o they_o in_o their_o sin_n by_o evil_a example_n their_o forsake_v or_o corrupt_v of_o the_o right_a worship_n of_o god_n and_o the_o like_a that_o by_o the_o distinct_a and_o clear_a up-taking_a of_o all_o they_o may_v be_v the_o more_o humble_a and_o the_o more_o provoke_v to_o praise_n god_n and_o to_o be_v diligent_a in_o their_o duty_n for_o such_o a_o representation_n be_v here_o give_v to_o convert_v of_o their_o former_a disposition_n and_o carriage_n that_o they_o have_v in_o time_n pass_v wrought_v with_o great_a intention_n and_o bensel_n of_o spirit_n as_o the_o word_n signify_v the_o will_n of_o the_o gentile_n by_o follow_v their_o example_n serve_v and_o encourage_v they_o in_o their_o sin_n walk_v in_o outward_a vileness_n and_o inward_a lust_n in_o excess_n of_o wine_n and_o such_o other_o gross_a sin_n against_o the_o second_o table_n and_o in_o abominable_a idolatry_n against_o the_o first_o table_n 7._o where_o the_o love_n of_o sin_n be_v entertain_v in_o the_o heart_n and_o profanity_n give_v way_n to_o in_o the_o practice_n contrary_a to_o the_o second_o table_n there_o be_v ordinary_o join_v therewith_o a_o forsake_v or_o corrupt_v of_o the_o right_a worship_n of_o god_n contrary_a to_o the_o first_o a_o spirit_n of_o strong_a delusion_n in_o the_o matter_n of_o religion_n and_o god_n worship_n be_v the_o ordinary_a and_o just_a plague_n of_o god_n upon_o those_o who_o frame_v not_o their_o heart_n and_o manner_n according_a to_o the_o rule_n of_o the_o word_n 2_o thess_n 2.10_o 11_o 12._o for_o this_o be_v the_o last_o instance_n of_o their_o profane_a course_n and_o may_v be_v take_v for_o the_o consequent_a of_o the_o rest_n that_o have_v walk_v in_o lust_n excess_n of_o wine_n etc._n etc._n they_o do_v also_o walk_v in_o abominable_a idolatry_n 8._o as_o every_o sin_n be_v hateful_a to_o the_o lord_n psal_n 45.7_o and_o shall_v for_o that_o cause_n be_v so_o to_o all_o his_o people_n zech._n 8.17_o so_o he_o have_v a_o special_a detestation_n of_o the_o sin_n of_o idolatry_n whether_o that_o more_o gross_a kind_n of_o it_o whereby_o that_o external_a worship_n which_o be_v due_a to_o god_n be_v any_o way_n give_v to_o a_o creature_n exod._n 32.5_o psal_n 106.19_o 20._o or_o that_o which_o be_v more_o spiritual_a whereby_o the_o affection_n of_o the_o heart_n be_v pour_v out_o excessive_o upon_o any_o thing_n beside_o god_n be_v it_o never_o so_o lawful_a in_o itself_o col._n 3.5_o therefore_o be_v this_o epithet_n express_o add_v to_o the_o last_o step_n of_o their_o wicked_a course_n here_o mention_v abominable_a idolatry_n verse_n 4._o wherein_o they_o think_v it_o strange_a that_o you_o run_v not_o with_o they_o to_o the_o same_o excess_n of_o riot_n speak_v evil_a of_o you_o 5._o who_o shall_v give_v account_n to_o he_o that_o be_v ready_a to_o judge_v the_o quick_a and_o the_o dead_a follow_v a_o three_o argument_n whereby_o the_o apostle_n press_v the_o study_n of_o holiness_n upon_o believer_n and_o remove_v a_o great_a discouragement_n out_o of_o their_o way_n the_o sum_n whereof_o be_v that_o however_o they_o who_o have_v now_o change_v their_o course_n and_o company_n may_v expect_v to_o be_v make_v a_o wonder_n to_o the_o profane_a and_o disgrace_v by_o they_o so_o far_o as_o they_o can_v for_o not_o join_v with_o they_o in_o their_o profane_a course_n former_o describe_v yet_o this_o aught_o to_o be_v no_o discouragement_n to_o the_o godly_a in_o the_o way_n of_o holiness_n in_o regard_n that_o these_o their_o mocker_n and_o persecutor_n behove_v short_o to_o give_v a_o strict_a and_o sad_a account_n of_o their_o way_n to_o the_o judge_n of_o all_o hence_o learn_v 1._o man_n that_o be_v leave_v of_o god_n to_o live_v in_o any_o sinful_a course_n be_v very_o unwilling_a that_o any_o shall_v part_v company_n with_o they_o in_o their_o way_n and_o be_v strong_o desirous_a to_o have_v other_o infect_v with_o their_o sin_n that_o so_o there_o may_v be_v none_o to_o make_v they_o ashamed_a and_o many_o to_o encourage_v they_o in_o their_o evil_a way_n psal_n 64.5_o for_o so_o much_o be_v import_v in_o this_o that_o they_o think_v strange_a that_o other_o run_v not_o with_o they_o to_o the_o same_o excess_n of_o riot_n 2._o be_v the_o course_n of_o profane_a man_n never_o so_o vile_a and_o even_o such_o as_o nature_n light_n can_v but_o condemn_v yet_o it_o be_v to_o they_o matter_n of_o great_a admiration_n that_o any_o shall_v abandon_v the_o course_n which_o they_o follow_v because_o they_o apprehend_v a_o paradise_n in_o the_o satisfaction_n of_o their_o lust_n 2_o pet._n 2.13_o and_o the_o true_a sweetness_n which_o be_v in_o christ_n service_n be_v whole_o hide_v from_o they_o prov._n 14.10_o therefore_o they_o think_v it_o strange_a that_o other_o run_v not_o with_o they_o to_o the_o same_o excess_n of_o riot_n 3._o it_o do_v not_o satisfy_v graceless_a person_n to_o go_v at_o leisure_n in_o the_o way_n to_o their_o own_o destruction_n but_o be_v act_v by_o that_o violent_a spirit_n of_o satan_n they_o make_v all_o the_o have_v they_o can_v towards_o their_o own_o ruin_n as_o man_n in_o a_o race_n do_v for_o a_o great_a prize_n as_o the_o word_n here_o signify_v
work_v any_o good_a motion_n or_o inclination_n in_o a_o sinner_n heart_n that_o be_v the_o work_n of_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n alone_o for_o sanctification_n which_o comprehend_v all_o gracious_a quality_n be_v here_o call_v the_o work_n of_o the_o spirit_n 8._o jesus_n christ_n our_o mediator_n have_v both_o obey_v the_o law_n perfect_o for_o we_o that_o he_o may_v make_v up_o the_o defect_n of_o our_o imperfect_a obedience_n col._n 2.10_o and_o cast_v we_o a_o perfect_a copy_n which_o we_o be_v bind_v to_o aim_v at_o in_o conformity_n heb._n 12.2_o and_o likewise_o have_v bear_v all_o that_o wrath_n which_o be_v due_a to_o all_o the_o elect_a for_o their_o breach_n of_o the_o law_n that_o so_o deserve_a wrath_n may_v pass_v over_o all_o his_o redeem_a one_o as_o the_o destroy_a angel_n pass_v by_o those_o who_o door_n be_v sprinkle_v with_o the_o blood_n of_o the_o paschal_n lamb_n to_o which_o the_o apostle_n expression_n here_o allude_v for_o both_o these_o which_o be_v common_o call_v christ_n active_a and_o passive_a obedience_n be_v here_o express_v by_o the_o apostle_n while_o he_o say_v elect_a etc._n etc._n unto_o obedience_n and_o sprinkle_v of_o the_o blood_n of_o jesus_n christ_n 9_o all_o the_o elect_n will_v certain_o partake_v of_o all_o that_o christ_n have_v purchase_v by_o his_o do_v and_o suffer_v for_o they_o the_o first_o fruit_n whereof_o they_o get_v in_o time_n and_o the_o full_a harvest_n afterward_o none_o of_o they_o can_v fall_v short_a of_o what_o they_o be_v from_o eternity_n destinate_a unto_o for_o the_o apostle_n say_v here_o they_o be_v choose_v unto_o obedience_n and_o sprinkle_v of_o the_o blood_n of_o christ_n which_o be_v nothing_o else_o but_o to_o be_v choose_v to_o lay_v hold_n on_o both_o by_o faith_n and_o at_o last_o full_o to_o enjoy_v what_o both_o have_v merit_v for_o they_o 10._o although_o christ_n fulfil_v of_o the_o law_n and_o suffer_v for_o our_o breach_n thereof_o which_o be_v here_o call_v his_o obedience_n and_o the_o sprinkle_n of_o his_o blood_n be_v in_o order_n first_o impute_v to_o we_o for_o justification_n before_o our_o sanctification_n rom._n 8.30_o yet_o our_o assurance_n and_o comfort_n of_o our_o interest_n in_o his_o obedience_n and_o suffering_n be_v not_o have_v till_o after_o our_o sanctification_n see_v joh._n 14.21_o for_o to_o be_v elect_a through_o sanctification_n of_o the_o spirit_n unto_o obedience_n and_o sprinkle_v of_o the_o blood_n of_o jesus_n christ_n be_v to_o be_v from_o eternity_n choose_v to_o come_v by_o the_o way_n of_o holiness_n to_o the_o full_a participation_n of_o what_o christ_n have_v purchase_v by_o his_o obedience_n and_o suffering_n to_o wit_n peace_n and_o joy_n in_o the_o holy_a ghost_n here_o and_o the_o full_a enjoyment_n of_o god_n hereafter_o both_o which_o be_v the_o purchase_n of_o his_o obedience_n and_o suffering_n to_o which_o we_o be_v elect_v elect_v unto_o obedience_n and_o sprinkle_v 11._o when_o we_o consider_v that_o great_a work_n which_o concern_v the_o salvation_n of_o lose_a sinner_n we_o be_v to_o look_v upon_o all_o the_o person_n of_o the_o bless_a trinity_n as_o concur_v therein_o that_o so_o we_o may_v have_v the_o high_a esteem_n of_o the_o work_n which_o have_v such_o agent_n and_o may_v have_v our_o heart_n raise_v to_o give_v equal_a glory_n to_o all_o the_o person_n for_o though_o our_o election_n redemption_n sanctification_n and_o glorification_n be_v each_o of_o they_o the_o work_n of_o the_o whole_a deity_n and_o none_o of_o the_o person_n be_v to_o be_v exclude_v from_o any_o of_o these_o yet_o the_o scripture_n allow_v we_o to_o have_v such_o thought_n anent_o the_o order_n of_o the_o person_n in_o work_v as_o we_o may_v have_v anent_o the_o order_n of_o their_o subsistence_n for_o here_o the_o apostle_n set_v forth_o the_o father_n out_o of_o his_o good_a pleasure_n elect_v sinner_n to_o grace_n and_o glory_n the_o son_n by_o his_o obedience_n and_o suffering_n purchase_v the_o same_o for_o they_o and_o the_o spirit_n by_o his_o virtue_n and_o power_n work_v grace_n in_o they_o and_o so_o prepare_v they_o for_o that_o blessedness_n which_o the_o father_n have_v appoint_v and_o christ_n have_v purchase_v for_o they_o elect_v according_a to_o the_o foreknowledge_n of_o god_n the_o father_n through_o sanctification_n of_o the_o spirit_n unto_o obedience_n and_o sprinkle_v of_o the_o blood_n of_o jesus_n christ_n from_o the_o salutation_n learn_v 1._o the_o minister_n of_o christ_n while_o they_o be_v deal_v with_o the_o lord_n people_n shall_v labour_v for_o enlarge_a desire_n after_o their_o welfare_n so_o will_v they_o be_v the_o more_o serious_a and_o affectionate_a in_o deal_v with_o they_o their_o pain_n will_v be_v the_o more_o sweet_a to_o themselves_o and_o the_o more_o acceptable_a to_o and_o successful_a with_o the_o people_n for_o the_o apostle_n ordinary_o begin_v their_o epistle_n with_o such_o ample_a expression_n of_o their_o desire_n after_o the_o good_a of_o those_o to_o who_o they_o write_v as_o this_o apostle_n do_v here_o grace_n and_o peace_n be_v multiply_v unto_o you_o 2._o no_o less_o than_o a_o continual_a increase_n of_o the_o proof_n of_o god_n favour_n and_o of_o all_o save_a grace_n together_o with_o true_a quietness_n of_o spirit_n and_o every_o blessing_n of_o god_n necessary_a for_o the_o same_o be_v the_o lord_n allowance_n to_o his_o redeem_a and_o sanctify_a one_o whatever_o measure_n of_o this_o allowance_n any_o of_o they_o have_v receive_v there_o be_v still_o more_o of_o it_o to_o be_v have_v and_o still_o more_o of_o it_o will_v be_v give_v unto_o they_o except_o their_o unbelief_n and_o other_o sin_n obstruct_v the_o outletting_n thereof_o for_o all_o this_o and_o much_o more_o the_o apostle_n wish_v unto_o they_o and_o pronounce_v upon_o they_o in_o this_o sal●●ation_n grace_n and_o peace_n be_v multiply_v unto_o you_o 3._o it_o be_v only_o those_o who_o be_v flee_v to_o christ_n merit_n and_o be_v begin_v to_o be_v change_v by_o his_o spirit_n who_o can_v expect_v this_o comfortable_a allowance_n to_o be_v let_v forth_o to_o they_o and_o those_o only_a christ_n minister_n may_v in_o his_o name_n certify_v of_o it_o for_o it_o be_v only_o those_o who_o be_v describe_v in_o the_o former_a part_n of_o the_o verse_n to_o who_o this_o be_v speak_v and_o this_o be_v not_o only_o a_o favourable_a wish_n of_o the_o apostle_n but_o a_o definitive_a sentence_n of_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n pass_v in_o their_o favour_n that_o grace_n and_o peace_n shall_v be_v multiply_v unto_o they_o verse_n 3._o bless_a be_v the_o god_n and_o father_n of_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n which_o according_a to_o his_o abundant_a mercy_n have_v beget_v we_o again_o unto_o a_o lively_a hope_n by_o the_o resurrection_n of_o jesus_n christ_n from_o the_o dead_a here_o the_o apostle_n enter_v upon_o the_o first_o part_n of_o the_o chapter_n wherein_o he_o set_v forth_o the_o excellency_n of_o the_o state_n of_o believer_n in_o jesus_n christ_n that_o thereby_o he_o may_v confirm_v they_o in_o the_o truth_n comfort_v they_o under_o their_o suffering_n and_o enforce_v upon_o they_o the_o study_n of_o holiness_n which_o be_v his_o principal_a scope_n in_o the_o whole_a epistle_n and_o this_o part_n he_o begin_v with_o a_o song_n of_o praise_n to_o god_n which_o all_o believer_n shall_v follow_v in_o their_o heart_n the_o reason_n of_o which_o song_n contain_v their_o privilege_n whereof_o every_o one_o do_v prove_v their_o state_n to_o be_v most_o excellent_a and_o that_o therefore_o they_o ought_v to_o be_v constant_a sufferer_n and_o holy_a walker_n the_o first_o reason_n be_v that_o they_o have_v a_o new_a spiritual_a life_n and_o nature_n communicate_v to_o they_o in_o their_o regeneration_n whereby_o they_o be_v now_o make_v child_n of_o god_n and_o this_o privilege_n be_v describe_v and_o commend_v 1._o from_o the_o author_n thereof_o that_o it_o be_v god_n and_o the_o father_n of_o such_o a_o son_n as_o christ_n who_o have_v make_v we_o his_o child_n 2._o from_o the_o impulsive_a cause_n move_v he_o so_o to_o do_v to_o wit_n nothing_o in_o we_o but_o mercy_n in_o he_o which_o be_v commend_v from_o the_o plenty_n or_o abundance_n of_o it_o 3._o this_o privilege_n of_o regeneration_n be_v commend_v from_o the_o effect_n of_o it_o that_o thereby_o the_o regenerate_v be_v make_v to_o hope_v for_o those_o excellent_a thing_n speak_v of_o in_o the_o follow_a word_n the_o nature_n of_o which_o hope_n be_v clear_v 1._o from_o the_o property_n or_o effect_v of_o it_o it_o be_v lively_a quicken_a the_o soul_n that_o have_v it_o and_o 2._o from_o the_o ground_n of_o it_o which_o be_v the_o cause_n of_o its_o liveliness_n to_o wit_n that_o our_o cautioner_n who_o die_v in_o our_o room_n be_v rise_v to_o apply_v his_o purchase_n and_o to_o possess_v we_o
the_o consideration_n of_o their_o second_o birth_n be_v strong_o move_v to_o the_o study_n of_o holiness_n for_o the_o honour_n of_o their_o father_n and_o especial_o to_o live_v in_o love_n with_o the_o rest_n of_o their_o father_n child_n for_o the_o apostle_n bring_v this_o as_o a_o further_a argument_n to_o the_o study_n of_o holiness_n and_o particular_o to_o the_o study_n of_o that_o branch_n of_o it_o which_o he_o have_v press_v in_o the_o former_a word_n concern_v mutual_a love_n among_o professor_n that_o they_o be_v bear_v again_o not_o of_o corruptible_a seed_n but_o of_o incorruptible_a by_o the_o word_n of_o god_n etc._n etc._n verse_n 24._o for_o all_o flesh_n be_v grass_n and_o all_o the_o glory_n of_o man_n as_o the_o flower_n of_o grass_n the_o grass_n wither_v and_o the_o flower_n thereof_o fall_v away_o 25._o but_o the_o word_n of_o the_o lord_n endure_v for_o ever_o and_o this_o be_v the_o word_n which_o by_o the_o gospel_n be_v preach_v unto_o you_o the_o last_o motive_n whereby_o the_o apostle_n press_v upon_o believer_n the_o study_n of_o holiness_n and_o constancy_n under_o suffering_n be_v take_v from_o a_o further_a commendation_n of_o the_o excellency_n of_o their_o spiritual_a estate_n which_o the_o apostle_n set_v out_o by_o compare_v the_o same_o with_o the_o best_a estate_n of_o man_n natural_o consider_v with_o all_o their_o ornament_n wherein_o they_o use_v to_o glory_n which_o be_v according_a to_o the_o scripture_n isa_n 40.6_o like_v unto_o wither_a grass_n and_o fade_a flower_n in_o the_o application_n of_o which_o comparison_n the_o apostle_n insist_o upon_o his_o former_a commendation_n of_o the_o word_n which_o be_v the_o seed_n whereby_o believer_n be_v beget_v from_o the_o perpetuity_n of_o it_o to_o wit_n in_o the_o effect_n thereof_o upon_o they_o which_o may_v easy_o lead_v they_o to_o judge_v of_o their_o state_n according_o and_o apply_v this_o commendation_n of_o the_o word_n to_o that_o doctrine_n which_o be_v preach_v to_o they_o by_o himself_o or_o other_o of_o the_o lord_n servant_n all_o which_o do_v strong_o press_v his_o scope_n that_o therefore_o they_o shall_v live_v holy_o and_o suffer_v cheerful_o as_o become_v those_o who_o be_v in_o so_o excellent_a a_o estate_n hence_o learn_v 1._o although_o it_o be_v much_o in_o the_o thought_n and_o desire_n of_o natural_a man_n that_o they_o may_v have_v a_o perpetual_a enjoyment_n of_o this_o life_n and_o the_o comfort_n of_o it_o psal_n 49.11_o yet_o themselves_o and_o all_o that_o they_o can_v glory_v in_o be_v frail_a and_o fade_a like_o the_o grass_n and_o flower_n of_o the_o grass_n whereupon_o they_o shall_v read_v their_o frailty_n and_o mortality_n and_o so_o be_v stir_v up_o to_o provide_v for_o a_o better_a life_n and_o a_o more_o endure_a substance_n than_o what_o they_o have_v here_o for_o all_o flesh_n be_v as_o grass_n and_o all_o the_o glory_n of_o man_n as_o the_o flower_n of_o grass_n 2._o though_o every_o common_a gift_n of_o god_n wherein_o man_n use_v to_o glory_n whether_o riches_n wisdom_n strength_n beauty_n or_o the_o like_a be_v fade_v as_o the_o grass_n and_o flower_n thereof_o yet_o because_o man_n credit_n or_o glory_n before_o the_o world_n be_v that_o wherein_o they_o use_v to_o glory_v most_o and_o of_o the_o perpetuate_n whereof_o they_o be_v most_o strong_o desirous_a psal_n 49.11_o the_o lord_n have_v put_v a_o special_a fadingness_n and_o vanity_n upon_o that_o and_o will_v have_v it_o as_o easy_o blast_v as_o any_o other_o thing_n wherein_o man_n glory_n for_o though_o the_o glory_n of_o man_n here_o speak_v of_o may_v be_v take_v large_o as_o comprehend_v every_o thing_n for_o which_o man_n lift_v up_o themselves_o and_o wherein_o they_o use_v to_o glory_n as_o the_o word_n be_v use_v mat._n 4.8_o yet_o it_o seem_v especial_o to_o point_n out_o that_o honour_n and_o credit_n which_o man_n affect_v to_o have_v before_o the_o world_n in_o which_o signification_n it_o be_v use_v 2_o thess_n 2.6_o the_o property_n whereof_o the_o lord_n pronounce_v to_o be_v fadingness_n or_o wither_a and_o all_o the_o glory_n of_o man_n as_o the_o flower_n of_o grass_n 3._o though_o this_o be_v a_o plain_a truth_n teach_v by_o daily_a experience_n and_o common_o acknowledge_v that_o our_o natural_a estate_n with_o all_o the_o ornament_n thereof_o be_v frail_a and_o fade_a yet_o it_o be_v not_o easy_a to_o make_v this_o truth_n take_v due_a impression_n upon_o the_o heart_n of_o man_n who_o be_v natural_o unwilling_a to_o admit_v thought_n of_o a_o change_n amos_n 6.2_o therefore_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n bear_v it_o in_o upon_o man_n mind_n under_o the_o same_o similitude_n in_o very_a many_o place_n of_o scripture_n job_n 14.2_o psal_n 103.15_o isa_n 40.6_o jam._n 1.10_o and_o here_o by_o many_o expression_n all_o flesh_n be_v grass_n and_o all_o the_o glory_n of_o man_n as_o the_o flower_n of_o grass_n the_o grass_n wither_v and_o the_o flower_n thereof_o fall_v away_o 4._o the_o believe_a consideration_n of_o this_o frailty_n and_o fadingness_n of_o man_n natural_a estate_n and_o earthly_a contentment_n shall_v heighten_v in_o their_o heart_n the_o esteem_n of_o that_o spiritual_a and_o better_a estate_n whereunto_o by_o receive_v the_o gospel_n they_o may_v be_v advance_v and_o shall_v be_v to_o they_o a_o powerful_a motive_n to_o the_o study_n of_o holiness_n which_o will_v abide_v when_o other_o thing_n do_v fade_v 1_o joh._n 3.9_o and_o especial_o to_o the_o study_n of_o mutual_a love_n among_o themselves_o those_o earthly_a thing_n for_o which_o usual_o they_o contend_v gen._n 13.8_o and_o particular_o their_o credit_n the_o love_n whereof_o be_v often_o the_o great_a occasion_n of_o strife_n among_o they_o luk._n 22.24_o be_v so_o fade_v and_o uncertain_a for_o as_o a_o commendation_n of_o the_o state_n of_o the_o regenerate_v or_o motive_n to_o the_o study_n of_o holiness_n and_o particular_o of_o brotherly_a love_n be_v this_o here_o bring_v in_o all_o flesh_n be_v grass_n and_o all_o the_o glory_n of_o man_n as_o the_o flower_n of_o grass_n the_o grass_n wither_v and_o the_o flower_n thereof_o fall_v away_o but_o the_o word_n of_o the_o lord_n endure_v for_o ever_o 5._o what_o ever_o can_v be_v speak_v to_o the_o commendation_n of_o the_o word_n serve_v also_o for_o the_o commendation_n of_o they_o who_o have_v by_o faith_n receive_v it_o and_o be_v regenerate_v by_o it_o that_o which_o be_v the_o seed_n and_o principle_n of_o their_o spiritual_a be_v their_o charter_n and_o right_a to_o all_o their_o privilege_n and_o inheritance_n be_v excellent_a and_o worthy_a their_o state_n must_v needs_o be_v such_o likewise_o for_o it_o be_v clear_v the_o apostle_n purpose_v here_o be_v to_o commend_v the_o state_n of_o the_o regenerate_v as_o far_o more_o excellent_a than_o the_o best_a natural_a state_n and_o this_o he_o esteem_v to_o be_v sufficient_o do_v by_o commend_v the_o word_n from_o the_o perpetuity_n of_o it_o in_o opposition_n to_o the_o frail_a state_n of_o man_n natural_o consider_v all_o flesh_n be_v grass_n etc._n etc._n but_o the_o word_n of_o the_o lord_n endure_v for_o ever_o 6._o they_o who_o have_v receive_v a_o new_a spiritual_a life_n and_o so_o be_v enter_v in_o a_o new_a state_n by_o their_o receive_n of_o the_o word_n aught_o to_o fix_v in_o their_o heart_n by_o frequent_a meditation_n the_o perpetuity_n of_o that_o word_n in_o the_o accomplishment_n of_o the_o good_a thing_n promise_v therein_o which_o shall_v endure_v to_o they_o for_o all_o eternity_n that_o so_o they_o may_v the_o better_o see_v and_o be_v the_o more_o affect_v with_o their_o own_o blessedness_n for_o the_o apostle_n have_v commend_v the_o word_n from_o this_o property_n of_o it_o before_o repeat_v it_o here_o again_o the_o word_n of_o the_o lord_n endure_v for_o ever_o 7._o as_o christ_n own_o worth_n and_o excellency_n be_v best_a see_v when_o he_o be_v compare_v with_o other_o thing_n which_o may_v seem_v to_o have_v worth_a in_o they_o cant._n 2.3_o so_o the_o worth_n of_o our_o spiritual_a estate_n be_v best_a see_v and_o most_o esteem_v of_o by_o we_o when_o we_o compare_v it_o with_o the_o frailty_n and_o fectlesness_n of_o the_o best_a state_n on_o earth_n beside_o for_o to_o heighten_v believer_n esteem_v of_o the_o one_o he_o compare_v it_o with_o the_o other_o all_o flesh_n be_v grass_n etc._n etc._n but_o the_o word_n of_o the_o lord_n and_o consequent_o their_o state_n who_o be_v beget_v again_o by_o the_o word_n endure_v for_o ever_o 8._o what_o ever_o good_a esteem_v the_o lord_n people_n have_v of_o the_o word_n of_o god_n in_o general_n they_o ought_v to_o have_v the_o same_o or_o the_o particular_a message_n that_o be_v bring_v to_o they_o from_o or_o according_a to_o that_o word_n by_o the_o lord_n servant_n who_o be_v send_v unto_o they_o
forth_o the_o praise_n of_o he_o 8._o even_o the_o elect_n before_o conversion_n be_v live_v in_o gross_a ignorance_n of_o their_o own_o miserable_a condition_n and_o the_o remedy_n thereof_o eph._n 5.8_o in_o the_o slavery_n of_o their_o lust_n rom._n 13.12_o they_o be_v under_o a_o sta●e_v of_o wrath_n as_o well_o as_o other_o eph._n 2.3_o and_o so_o without_o any_o true_a comfort_n eph._n 2.12_o all_o which_o in_o scripture_n be_v frequent_o set_v out_o by_o this_o word_n darkness_n whereby_o the_o apostle_n express_v the_o state_n of_o the_o elect_a before_o conversion_n 9_o conversion_n bring_v sinner_n into_o a_o state_n of_o light_n which_o comprehend_v some_o clear_a knowledge_n of_o their_o own_o misery_n rev._n 3.18_o and_o the_o remedy_n thereof_o 2_o cor._n 4.6_o a_o new_a and_o spiritual_a life_n communicate_v to_o they_o whereby_o they_o be_v enable_v to_o close_v with_o christ_n and_o cleave_v unto_o he_o joh_n 18.12_o to_o walk_v in_o holiness_n of_o life_n mat._n 5.16_o their_o live_n in_o his_o favour_n psal_n 89.15_o their_o have_v a_o right_a to_o glory_n col._n 1.12_o and_o his_o allowance_n to_o rejoice_v and_o comfort_v themselves_o in_o their_o bless_a estate_n rom._n 5.2_o all_o which_o be_v set_v forth_o in_o scripture_n by_o this_o word_n whereby_o the_o apostle_n express_v the_o excellent_a state_n of_o convert_v one_o who_o be_v call_v out_o of_o darkness_n into_o his_o light_n 10._o the_o bless_a estate_n of_o true_a convert_v be_v much_o to_o be_v admire_v by_o they_o consider_v the_o lord_n wonderful_a condescendency_n in_o pluck_v they_o out_o of_o so_o woeful_a a_o condition_n as_o they_o be_v in_o before_o his_o marvellous_a love_a kindness_n in_o possess_v they_o in_o such_o excellent_a privilege_n as_o they_o have_v in_o their_o new_a state_n and_o give_v they_o a_o undoubted_a right_n to_o so_o matchless_a a_o inheritance_n as_o can_v but_o surpass_v the_o power_n of_o their_o understanding_n to_o comprehend_v and_o so_o make_v they_o wonder_v at_o their_o own_o happiness_n which_o be_v here_o call_v marvellous_a light_n 11._o the_o way_n how_o the_o lord_n bring_v his_o own_o out_o of_o the_o state_n of_o nature_n which_o be_v here_o call_v darkness_n into_o the_o state_n of_o grace_n which_o be_v call_v light_n be_v by_o his_o call_n of_o they_o by_o the_o gospel_n 2_o thess_n 2.14_o open_v their_o heart_n to_o receive_v it_o by_o the_o power_n of_o his_o spirit_n come_v along_o with_o it_o act._n 16.14_o and_o so_o powerful_o change_v they_o into_o his_o own_o image_n 2_o cor._n 3.18_o who_o have_v call_v we_o out_o of_o darkness_n into_o his_o marvellous_a light_n 12._o these_o upon_o who_o the_o lord_n have_v wrought_v this_o bless_a change_n ought_v frequent_o to_o reflect_v upon_o their_o former_a woeful_a state_n that_o they_o may_v be_v keep_v humble_a 1_o cor._n 15.9_o and_o compassionate_a to_o other_o who_o be_v yet_o in_o the_o like_a tit._n 3.2_o 3._o and_o likewise_o upon_o their_o present_a bless_a condition_n that_o they_o may_v be_v provoke_v to_o praise_v and_o to_o the_o study_n of_o holiness_n 1_o tim._n 1.16_o 17._o for_o which_o and_o the_o like_a cause_n the_o change_n of_o believer_n from_o the_o one_o state_n to_o the_o other_o be_v here_o represent_v to_o their_o thought_n that_o they_o may_v show_v forth_o the_o praise_n of_o he_o who_o have_v call_v they_o out_o of_o darkness_n into_o his_o marvellous_a light_n verse_n 10._o which_o in_o time_n past_o be_v not_o a_o people_n but_o be_v now_o the_o people_n of_o god_n which_o bid_v not_o obtain_v mercy_n but_o now_o have_v obtain_v mercy_n here_o be_v a_o further_a description_n of_o that_o happy_a change_n wrought_v upon_o these_o christian_a hebrew_n to_o who_o he_o write_v to_o wit_n that_o they_o who_o before_o their_o embrace_n of_o the_o gospel_n have_v not_o be_v own_v nor_o deal_v with_o by_o the_o lord_n as_o his_o peculiar_a people_n in_o covenant_n with_o he_o neither_o yet_o have_v enjoy_v any_o of_o his_o special_a mercy_n be_v how_o make_v he_o in_o a_o more_o special_a way_n than_o other_o and_o have_v save_v and_o special_a mercy_n offer_v to_o all_o of_o they_o and_o bestow_v upon_o some_o of_o they_o so_o that_o hosea_n prophecy_n chap._n 2.23_o concern_v the_o restore_n of_o the_o jewish_a nation_n after_o their_o rejection_n for_o a_o time_n have_v now_o a_o begin_v accomplishment_n in_o they_o especial_o in_o those_o of_o they_o who_o have_v feel_v the_o forementioned_a remarkable_a change_n whereby_o they_o shall_v be_v move_v to_o live_v to_o the_o praise_n of_o he_o that_o make_v it_o hence_o learn_v 1._o when_o the_o lord_n speak_v to_o his_o church_n in_o one_o age_n or_o to_o some_o particular_a person_n in_o it_o he_o do_v often_o speak_v also_o to_o his_o church_n in_o after-age_n and_o to_o all_o the_o rest_n of_o his_o people_n who_o be_v to_o live_v afterward_o see_v mark_n 13.37_o and_o heb._n 13.4_o compare_v with_o josh_n 1.6_o and_o therefore_o it_o be_v the_o duty_n of_o all_o his_o people_n to_o mark_v how_o far_o promise_n make_v long_o since_o to_o the_o church_n o●_n particular_a believer_n in_o it_o have_v their_o accomplishment_n towards_o themselves_o that_o so_o they_o find_v what_o be_v long_o since_o speak_v to_o other_o make_v good_a to_o they_o they_o may_v be_v the_o more_o affect_v with_o that_o ancient_a and_o constant_a love_n of_o god_n who_o thought_n have_v be_v upon_o they_o for_o good_a while_o he_o be_v speak_v to_o other_o who_o live_v many_o age_n before_o they_o for_o the_o apostle_n cite_v and_o apply_v this_o scripture_n speak_v by_o hosea_n to_o the_o people_n in_o his_o time_n as_o now_o verify_v upon_o these_o christian_a hebrew_n to_o who_o he_o write_v which_o in_o time_n past_o be_v not_o a_o people_n etc._n etc._n 2._o they_o that_o will_v delight_v in_o show_v forth_o the_o praise_n of_o god_n and_o have_v their_o heart_n engage_v to_o the_o study_n of_o holiness_n must_v learn_v to_o dwell_v upon_o the_o thought_n of_o their_o woeful_a case_n wherein_o they_o be_v before_o conversion_n and_o upon_o the_o bless_a state_n whereunto_o through_o god_n mercy_n they_o be_v advance_v and_o often_o to_o compare_v the_o one_o with_o the_o other_o that_o so_o they_o may_v be_v the_o more_o affect_v with_o the_o change_n and_o engage_v to_o study_v his_o honour_n that_o make_v it_o for_o after_o the_o apostle_n have_v in_o the_o former_a verse_n represent_v this_o to_o their_o thought_n as_o a_o motive_n to_o holiness_n he_o do_v here_o insist_v upon_o and_o represent_v the_o same_o again_o by_o a_o new_a enlargement_n of_o it_o which_o be_v main_o verify_v in_o true_a convert_v who_o in_o time_n past_o be_v not_o a_o people_n but_o be_v now_o the_o people_n of_o god_n etc._n etc._n although_o the_o elect_v be_v the_o lord_n people_n from_o eternity_n in_o regard_n of_o his_o purpose_n of_o grace_n towards_o they_o psal_n 90.1_o 2_o tim._n 1.9_o yet_o in_o regard_n of_o any_o actual_a manifestation_n of_o special_a love_n to_o they_o or_o of_o his_o complacency_n in_o they_o as_o carry_v his_o image_n they_o be_v not_o his_o people_n but_o remain_v slave_n to_o satan_n eph._n 2.2_o and_o to_o their_o own_o lust_n tit._n 3.3_o until_o such_o time_n as_o by_o his_o power_n put_v forth_o with_o the_o preach_n of_o the_o law_n their_o woeful_a case_n be_v discover_v to_o they_o luke_n 1.17_o and_o by_o the_o same_o power_n come_v along_o with_o the_o preach_n of_o the_o gospel_n they_o be_v make_v willing_a to_o accept_v the_o offer_n of_o reconciliation_n through_o jesus_n christ_n psal_n 110.3_o and_o thereby_o also_o be_v fit_v for_o the_o duty_n of_o new_a obedience_n for_o the_o honour_n of_o christ_n isa_n 43.21_o all_o which_o as_o the_o place_n cite_v prove_v be_v mark_n of_o they_o who_o he_o do_v in_o a_o special_a way_n own_o for_o his_o people_n for_o of_o the_o choose_a generation_n the_o apostle_n thus_o speak_v in_o reference_n to_o their_o state_n before_o and_o after_o conversion_n which_o in_o time_n past_o be_v not_o a_o people_n but_o be_v now_o the_o people_n of_o god_n 4._o though_o there_o be_v not_o a_o sinner_n in_o the_o world_n who_o have_v not_o many_o mercy_n of_o god_n free_o bestow_v upon_o he_o psal_n 145.9_o and_o many_o deserve_a stroke_n keep_v off_o he_o rom._n 2.3_o yet_o even_o the_o elect_a before_o their_o conversion_n have_v not_o obtain_v that_o special_a mercy_n whereby_o their_o sin_n be_v actual_o pardon_v act._n 3.19_o and_o whereby_o the_o lord_n have_v complacency_n in_o they_o ezek._n 16.8_o and_o so_o they_o can_v be_v justify_v actual_o from_o eternity_n for_o only_o of_o true_a convert_v be_v the_o apostle_n speech_n here_o principal_o to_o be_v understand_v while_o he_o say_v that_o in_o time_n past_a to_o
another_o five_o that_o they_o shall_v show_v themselves_o courteous_a in_o their_o carriage_n and_o easy_a to_o be_v converse_v with_o ver_fw-la 8._o six_o that_o they_o shall_v not_o study_v to_o requite_v mutual_a injury_n but_o seventhly_a rather_o seek_v the_o happiness_n of_o they_o that_o wrong_v they_o all_o which_o especial_o the_o last_o two_o the_o apostle_n press_v by_o this_o reason_n that_o they_o be_v all_o call_v to_o inherit_v one_o common_a blessedness_n from_o ver_fw-la 8._o learn_v 1._o although_o complete_a oneness_n of_o judgement_n can_v be_v expect_v among_o the_o lord_n people_n while_o knowledge_n be_v imperfect_a in_o all_o 1_o cor._n 13.9_o and_o dispense_v in_o different_a measure_n rom._n 12.6_o yet_o it_o ought_v to_o be_v the_o sincere_a endeavour_n of_o every_o one_o so_o to_o drink-in_a the_o knowledge_n of_o all_o save_n and_o necessary_a truth_n themselves_o and_o to_o employ_v their_o power_n according_a to_o their_o call_n to_o make_v all_o other_o do_v the_o same_o that_o they_o may_v be_v so_o far_o as_o be_v possible_a as_o if_o one_o and_o the_o same_o mind_n be_v in_o they_o all_o as_o the_o word_n here_o signify_v which_o be_v in_o some_o good_a measure_n attain_v when_o christian_n do_v agree_v in_o all_o save_n and_o fundamental_a truth_n and_o when_o their_o prime_a project_n and_o design_n as_o the_o word_n also_o signify_v do_v meet_v in_o one_o to_o wit_n the_o advancement_n of_o the_o glory_n of_o jesus_n christ_n without_o which_o unity_n of_o judgement_n there_o do_v ordinary_o follow_v among_o the_o lord_n people_n alienation_n of_o affection_n gal._n 4.15_o 16._o and_o a_o loss_n of_o the_o consolation_n of_o christ_n spirit_n which_o use_v to_o be_v give_v through_o their_o communion_n among_o themselves_o philip._n 2.1_o 2._o for_o this_o be_v it_o which_o the_o apostle_n here_o express_o press_v final_o be_v all_o of_o one_o mind_n 2._o every_o one_o of_o the_o child_n of_o the_o lord_n aught_o to_o be_v so_o affect_v with_o the_o condition_n of_o another_o as_o if_o it_o be_v their_o own_o mourning_z with_o and_o for_o one_o another_o in_o affliction_n as_o if_o they_o be_v afflict_v with_o they_o heb._n 13.3_o rejoice_v in_o and_o praise_v for_o their_o welfare_n as_o if_o they_o be_v in_o their_o case_n rom._n 12.15_o consider_v that_o they_o be_v all_o member_n of_o one_o body_n 1_o cor._n 12.26_o and_o that_o this_o sympathize_v frame_n of_o spirit_n be_v a_o special_a part_n of_o our_o conformity_n to_o jesus_n christ_n heb._n 4.15_o for_o this_o be_v the_o second_o duty_n here_o press_v have_v compassion_n one_o of_o another_o 3._o whatever_o difference_n for_o worldly_a respect_n or_o measure_n of_o spiritual_a gift_n there_o may_v be_v among_o the_o child_n of_o the_o lord_n there_o shall_v be_v notwithstanding_o such_o affection_n and_o love_n in_o the_o most_o eminent_a and_o strong_a towards_o the_o mean_a and_o weak_a as_o be_v among_o brethren_n they_o be_v all_o child_n of_o one_o father_n joh._n 1.12_o and_o the_o weak_a own_a by_o christ_n as_o his_o brethren_n heb._n 2.11_o and_o coheir_n not_o only_o with_o the_o strong_a but_o with_o jesus_n christ_n himself_o of_o everlasting_a blessedness_n rom._n 8.17_o and_o therefore_o that_o measure_n of_o affection_n which_o may_v be_v find_v among_o man_n without_o the_o church_n who_o have_v not_o put_v off_o humanity_n be_v not_o sufficient_a for_o one_o of_o the_o lord_n people_n towards_o another_o for_o this_o be_v the_o three_o duty_n here_o press_v love_n as_o brethren_n 4._o there_o can_v neither_o be_v unity_n sympathy_n nor_o brotherly_a love_n among_o the_o lord_n people_n unless_o they_o have_v heart_n to_o pity_v the_o infirmity_n one_o of_o another_o and_o some_o provenesse_n of_o spirit_n to_o do_v good_a to_o other_o even_o when_o they_o deserve_v the_o contrary_a at_o their_o hand_n for_o this_o word_n whereby_o the_o apostle_n press_v the_o four_o duty_n be_v often_o use_v to_o signify_v christ_n compassion_n to_o his_o own_o which_o be_v manifest_v in_o bestow_v favour_n notwithstanding_o of_o provocation_n and_o signify_v such_o a_o tenderheartedness_n as_o be_v evidence_v by_o forgive_a of_o wrong_n eph._n 4.32_o be_v pitiful_a 5._o they_o that_o will_v keep_v up_o a_o sweet_a and_o profitable_a society_n with_o other_o of_o the_o lord_n people_n must_v show_v themselves_o affable_a and_o pleasant_a in_o their_o carriage_n towards_o they_o study_v to_o speak_v and_o do_v so_o far_o as_o they_o may_v with_o a_o good_a conscience_n what_o may_v be_v acceptable_a and_o engage_v of_o their_o affection_n to_o they_o for_o this_o duty_n which_o be_v the_o last_o in_o the_o eight_o verse_n as_o also_o all_o the_o former_a may_v be_v take_v in_o reference_n to_o the_o keep_n up_o of_o society_n with_o other_o be_v courteous_a from_o ver_fw-la 9_o learn_v 1._o even_o those_o who_o have_v attain_v to_o such_o a_o carriage_n as_o aught_o in_o all_o reason_n to_o be_v lovely_a and_o honour_v by_o all_o with_o who_o they_o converse_v may_v notwithstanding_o resolve_v to_o meet_v with_o much_o hard_a usage_n and_o many_o slander_n for_o the_o apostle_n press_v here_o patience_n in_o the_o six_o place_n import_v that_o they_o who_o have_v attain_v to_o all_o the_o former_a sieve_n will_v notwithstanding_o have_v ado_n with_o their_o patience_n not_o render_v evil_a for_o evil_n or_o rail_v for_o rail_v 2._o the_o child_n of_o the_o lord_n may_v resolve_v not_o only_o to_o meet_v with_o hard_a usage_n and_o bitter_a language_n from_o the_o profane_a or_o those_o that_o be_v without_o but_o even_o from_o their_o fellow-professor_n whether_o hypocrite_n who_o will_v still_o be_v malign_v the_o sincere_a gal._n 4.29_o or_o even_o true_o gracious_a who_o corruption_n oppose_v grace_n in_o other_o job_n 16.20_o for_o this_o last_o grace_n of_o patience_n press_v in_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o eight_o verse_n can_v well_o be_v take_v in_o reference_n to_o other_o person_n than_o these_o in_o reference_n to_o who_o the_o exercise_n of_o the_o former_a grace_n or_o duty_n be_v press_v which_o do_v clear_o relate_v to_o other_o professor_n and_o therefore_o this_o import_v that_o they_o may_v be_v try_v both_o with_o evil_a deed_n and_o word_n from_o such_o while_o the_o apostle_n thus_o dehort_v not_o render_v evil_a for_o evil_n or_o rail_n for_o rail_v 3._o however_o the_o best_a of_o the_o child_n of_o the_o lord_n be_v prone_a to_o study_v revenge_n and_o requital_n of_o private_a injury_n as_o be_v suppon_v in_o this_o dissuasive_a yet_o must_v they_o not_o allow_v themselves_o in_o so_o do_v as_o they_o love_v their_o own_o and_o other_o peace_n and_o desire_v to_o eschew_v the_o displeasure_n of_o god_n for_o usurp_a his_o place_n rom._n 12.19_o prov._n 23.2_o not_o render_v evil_a for_o evil_n or_o rail_v for_o rail_v 4._o so_o far_o shall_v the_o lord_n people_n be_v from_o the_o study_n of_o private_a revenge_n and_o retaliation_n of_o wrong_n do_v by_o one_o of_o they_o against_o another_o that_o by_o the_o contrary_a the_o great_a personal_a wrong_a by_o word_n or_o deed_n shall_v not_o hinder_v one_o of_o they_o to_o procure_v the_o bestow_n of_o blessing_n if_o they_o be_v able_a upon_o another_o to_o commend_v in_o they_o what_o they_o can_v discern_v to_o be_v praiseworthy_a or_o to_o pray_v for_o their_o true_a blessedness_n which_o be_v a_o special_a draught_n of_o the_o image_n of_o the_o lord_n mat._n 5.44_o 45._o all_o which_o be_v in_o the_o signification_n of_o this_o word_n whereby_o the_o apostle_n express_v the_o duty_n opposite_a to_o render_v evil_a for_o evil_n or_o rail_v for_o rail_v but_o contrariwise_o blessing_n 5._o the_o consideration_n of_o that_o everlasting_a blessedness_n which_o consist_v in_o the_o clear_a vision_n and_o full_a fruition_n of_o god_n in_o christ_n through_o the_o spirit_n and_o which_o sinner_n who_o be_v natural_o under_o the_o curse_n be_v call_v to_o possess_v as_o their_o free-gifted_n inheritance_n as_o the_o word_n here_o translate_v to_o inherit_v signify_v shall_v comfort_v the_o heart_n of_o believer_n against_o the_o worst_a usage_n and_o vile_a reproach_n of_o man_n which_o will_v be_v sufficient_o make_v up_o when_o they_o come_v to_o possess_v that_o blessedness_n the_o thought_n whereof_o shall_v take_v they_o off_o from_o all_o study_n of_o revenge_n towards_o those_o who_o may_v be_v heir_n with_o they_o of_o the_o same_o inheritance_n and_o who_o can_v never_o wrong_v they_o so_o far_o as_o they_o have_v wrong_v the_o lord_n who_o have_v gracious_o call_v they_o to_o possess_v that_o free-gifted_n inheritance_n for_o this_o be_v here_o propose_v by_o the_o apostle_n as_o a_o argument_n to_o patience_n under_o wrong_n and_o a_o dissuasive_a from_o revenge_n among_o the_o lord_n people_n for_o even_o hereunto_o be_v you_o call_v that_o you_o shall_v
inherit_v a_o blessing_n verse_n 10._o for_o he_o that_o will_v love_v life_n and_o see_v good_a day_n let_v he_o refrain_v his_o tongue_n from_o evil_n and_o his_o lip_n that_o they_o speak_v no_o guile_n 11._o let_v he_o eschew_v evil_a and_o do_v good_a let_v he_o seek_v peace_n and_o ensue_v it_o here_o be_v a_o second_o motive_n to_o the_o study_n of_o the_o duty_n former_o press_v to_o wit_n that_o that_o study_n be_v the_o way_n to_o have_v a_o sweet_a life_n and_o many_o good_a day_n in_o communion_n with_o the_o lord_n notwithstanding_o of_o all_o their_o trouble_n and_o this_o argument_n be_v take_v out_o of_o psal_n 34.12_o 13._o and_o do_v contain_v four_o several_a direction_n for_o clear_v the_o way_n of_o attain_v to_o that_o sweet_a fellowship_n with_o god_n and_o among_o themselves_o the_o first_o be_v that_o they_o shall_v watch_v against_o the_o evil_n of_o the_o tongue_n the_o second_o be_v that_o they_o shall_v set_v against_o every_o know_a sin_n the_o three_o be_v that_o they_o shall_v set_v about_o the_o practice_n of_o every_o know_a duty_n and_o fourthly_a that_o they_o shall_v earnest_o pursue_v peace_n with_o other_o of_o the_o lord_n people_n so_o may_v they_o expect_v sweet_a communion_n with_o himself_o hence_o learn_v 1._o although_o the_o most_o part_n of_o man_n esteem_v their_o life_n happy_a and_o their_o day_n good_a enough_o if_o they_o enjoy_v abundance_n of_o earthly_a comfort_n psal_n 4.6_o 7._o and_o 49.16_o 18._o yet_o there_o be_v no_o life_n that_o deserve_v the_o name_n of_o a_o life_n except_o it_o be_v sweeten_v sometime_o with_o taste_n of_o the_o lord_n be_v special_a love_n nor_o be_v there_o any_o day_n that_o be_v worthy_a to_o be_v call_v good_a day_n which_o be_v not_o spend_v in_o fellowship_n with_o god_n for_o this_o life_n and_o those_o good_a day_n here_o speak_v of_o be_v the_o same_o with_o taste_v how_o gracious_a the_o lord_n be_v as_o appear_v by_o compare_v these_o word_n with_o the_o nine_o verse_n of_o the_o psalm_n whence_o they_o be_v cite_v 2._o there_o be_v no_o way_n to_o live_v that_o sweet_a life_n and_o to_o see_v those_o good_a day_n that_o sinner_n may_v attain_v unto_o even_o here_o away_o in_o communion_n with_o the_o lord_n but_o by_o the_o study_n of_o holiness_n eschew_v every_o thing_n that_o grieve_v the_o spirit_n of_o god_n and_o aim_v sincere_o at_o the_o practice_n of_o every_o thing_n that_o be_v well-pleasing_a in_o his_o sight_n for_o both_o these_o be_v here_o press_v as_o the_o way_n to_o have_v that_o life_n and_o to_o see_v those_o good_a day_n 3._o although_o man_n be_v prone_a to_o count_v very_o little_a of_o the_o sin_n of_o their_o tongue_n psal_n 12.2_o 4._o yet_o much_o of_o that_o guilt_n which_o mar_v sweet_a fellowship_n with_o god_n will_v be_v find_v in_o sin_n of_o that_o kind_n partly_o in_o idle_a and_o unprofitable_a discourse_n whereof_o man_n must_v give_v a_o account_n mat._n 12.36_o foolish_a talk_v and_o jest_v which_o be_v not_o convenient_a eph._n 5.4_o rigid_a censure_v of_o and_o bitter_a enu●ighing_v against_o other_o which_o make_v all_o that_o christian_n do_v in_o religion_n useless_a jam._n 1.26_o and_o grieve_v the_o spirit_n of_o god_n eph._n 4.29_o 30_o 31._o meddle_v with_o those_o thing_n in_o discourse_n wherein_o folk_n be_v not_o concern_v 1_o tim._n 5.13_o and_o the_o like_a which_o may_v be_v comprehend_v under_o that_o which_o be_v here_o call_v evil_a and_o partly_o in_o equivocation_n gen._n 20.2_o 12._o vent_v of_o error_n under_o fair_a speech_n and_o pretence_n rom._n 16.17_o and_o hypocritical_a or_o feign_a discourse_n whereby_o christian_n do_v give_v out_o themselves_o to_o be_v what_o they_o be_v not_o which_o resemble_v that_o whereunto_o david_n relate_v in_o that_o passage_n of_o the_o psalm_n which_o be_v here_o cite_v as_o appear_v by_o compare_v the_o word_n with_o the_o title_n of_o that_o psalm_n all_o which_o and_o the_o like_a may_v be_v comprehend_v under_o guile_n and_o both_o sort_n of_o sin_n of_o the_o tongue_n be_v to_o be_v abstain_v from_o by_o those_o that_o will_v enjoy_v communion_n with_o the_o lord_n for_o in_o order_n to_o that_o this_o be_v the_o first_o direction_n he_o that_o will_v love_v life_n and_o see_v good_a day_n let_v he_o refrain_v his_o tongue_n from_o evil_n and_o his_o lip_n that_o they_o speak_v no_o guile_n 4._o be_v christian_n never_o so_o innocent_a in_o their_o discourse_n and_o watchful_a over_o their_o tongue_n except_o also_o they_o make_v it_o their_o serious_a study_n to_o keep_v a_o distance_n in_o heart_n and_o practice_n from_o every_o know_a sin_n and_o that_o as_o it_o be_v evil_a and_o contrary_a to_o the_o holy_a nature_n and_o will_n of_o god_n they_o can_v expect_v to_o keep_v up_o that_o sweet_a communion_n with_o god_n which_o he_o allow_v upon_o his_o own_o for_o this_o be_v the_o second_o direction_n necessary_a for_o attain_v to_o that_o end_n let_v he_o eschew_v evil_a 5._o it_o be_v not_o simple_a abstinence_n from_o sin_n suppose_v that_o can_v be_v attain_v to_o without_o further_a that_o fit_v soul_n for_o entertain_v fellowship_n with_o god_n unless_o there_o be_v also_o join_v therewith_o a_o sincere_a and_o universal_a aim_n at_o every_o thing_n that_o be_v well-pleasing_a in_o the_o sight_n of_o god_n both_o in_o duty_n relate_v more_o immediate_o to_o god_n and_o his_o public_a matter_n in_o the_o world_n 2_o chron._n 24.16_o and_o in_o duty_n towards_o other_o of_o his_o people_n whether_o those_o of_o our_o particular_a relation_n 1_o tim._n 5.4_o or_o other_o gal._n 6.10_o to_o which_o these_o scripture_n give_v the_o name_n of_o do_v good_a for_o this_o be_v the_o three_o direction_n for_o attain_v and_o enjoy_v communion_n with_o god_n let_v he_o do_v good_a 6._o they_o that_o desire_v to_o have_v much_o peace_n in_o fellowship_n with_o god_n must_v be_v very_o serious_a in_o study_v peace_n with_o other_o both_o by_o live_v peaceable_o with_o they_o themselves_o so_o far_o as_o be_v possible_a rom._n 12.18_o without_o prejudice_n to_o truth_n zech._n 8.19_o or_o holiness_n heb._n 12.14_o and_o procure_v and_o cherish_v peace_n among_o other_o of_o the_o lord_n people_n mat._n 5.9_o both_o which_o be_v comprehend_v in_o this_o four_o direction_n for_o attain_v to_o and_o enjoy_v of_o communion_n with_o god_n let_v he_o seek_v peace_n and_o ensue_v it_o 7._o as_o there_o will_v be_v no_o small_a difficulty_n from_o satan_n our_o own_o and_o other_o corruption_n in_o the_o way_n of_o attain_v and_o entertain_v peace_n among_o the_o lord_n people_n so_o none_o of_o they_o must_v stand_v upon_o their_o pain_n in_o the_o pursuit_n thereof_o nor_o quit_v the_o same_o though_o upon_o many_o former_a essay_n they_o have_v not_o have_v success_n and_o though_o peace_n seem_v to_o be_v fly_v from_o they_o all_o which_o be_v import_v in_o the_o signification_n and_o double_n of_o the_o word_n here_o seek_v peace_n and_o ensue_v it_o verse_n 12._o for_o the_o eye_n of_o the_o lord_n be_v over_o the_o righteous_a and_o his_o ear_n be_v open_a unto_o their_o prayer_n but_o the_o face_n of_o the_o lord_n be_v against_o they_o that_o do_v evil_a here_o be_v three_o further_a argument_n to_o press_v the_o forementioned_a duty_n the_o first_o be_v that_o the_o watchful_a providence_n of_o god_n be_v exercise_v about_o they_o for_o their_o good_a who_o have_v flee_v to_o the_o righteousness_n of_o christ_n do_v also_o walk_v in_o the_o way_n of_o righteousness_n or_o holiness_n former_o describe_v the_o second_o be_v that_o he_o do_v favourable_o accept_v of_o their_o prayer_n and_o the_o three_o be_v that_o the_o terror_n and_o wrath_n of_o god_n be_v employ_v against_o those_o that_o walk_v in_o the_o contrary_a way_n hence_o learn_v 1._o it_o be_v the_o privilege_n of_o justify_v person_n walk_v in_o the_o way_n of_o holiness_n to_o have_v the_o favourable_a providence_n of_o god_n watch_v over_o they_o for_o good_a which_o comprehend_v his_o furnish_n of_o they_o with_o every_o thing_n necessary_a for_o their_o welfare_n deut._n 11.12_o ward_n hazard_n off_o they_o as_o far_o as_o shall_v be_v for_o their_o good_a 2_o chron._n 16.9_o render_v ineffectual_a all_o opposition_n make_v to_o they_o while_o he_o have_v service_n for_o they_o ezra_n 5.5_o support_v they_o under_o and_o deliver_v they_o from_o all_o their_o trouble_n in_o due_a time_n psal_n 33.18_o and_o make_v out_o his_o covenant_n to_o they_o jer._n 24.6_o 7._o all_o which_o the_o scripture_n cite_v make_v clear_a to_o be_v comprehend_v in_o this_o expression_n which_o hold_v forth_o their_o privilege_n the_o eye_n of_o the_o lord_n be_v over_o the_o righteous_a 2._o although_o for_o wise_a reason_n the_o prayer_n of_o the_o lord_n people_n may_v have_v no_o answer_n for_o
good_a joh._n 7.7_o and_o their_o carriage_n a_o shame_n and_o ●●proof_n to_o other_o 1_o joh._n 3.12_o for_o lest_o from_o the_o former_a ●●couragement_n any_o may_v expect_v exemption_n from_o trou●●●_n by_o follow_v that_o which_o be_v good_a he_o do_v in_o this_o suppone_v that_o they_o may_v expect_v to_o be_v put_v to_o suffer_v for_o righteousness_n sake_n 2._o the_o suffering_n of_o the_o godly_a for_o righteousness_n sake_n be_v so_o far_o from_o make_v they_o miserable_a as_o themselves_o be_v apt_a to_o apprehend_v psal_n 73.13_o and_o the_o wicked_a world_n do_v ordinary_o judge_v 2_o cor._n 4.13_o that_o by_o the_o contrary_a they_o serve_v both_o to_o promote_v their_o spiritual_a happiness_n the_o time_n of_o suffering_n be_v the_o time_n wherein_o every_o grace_n thrive_v most_o rom._n 5.3_o and_o divine_a consolation_n abound_v most_o in_o their_o heart_n 2_o cor._n 1.5_o and_o likewise_o to_o evidence_n and_o prove_v to_o they_o their_o right_n to_o everlasting_a blessedness_n philip._n 1.28_o a_o special_a measure_n whereof_o be_v reserve_v for_o the_o great_a sufferer_n rev._n 7.13_o &c_n &c_n for_o this_o second_o encouragement_n do_v contradict_v the_o lord_n people_n ordinary_a apprehension_n of_o themselves_o and_o the_o profane_a world_n opinion_n of_o they_o under_o suffer_v if_o you_o suffer_v for_o righteousness_n sake_n happy_a be_v you_o 3._o the_o best_a of_o the_o child_n of_o the_o lord_n be_v in_o hazard_n to_o have_v their_o spirit_n trouble_v and_o perplex_v with_o the_o fear_n of_o hazard_n from_o flesh_n which_o be_v then_o exceed_v sinful_a when_o it_o make_v they_o deny_v the_o truth_n mat._n 26.70_o or_o take_v any_o sinful_a course_n for_o their_o temporal_a safety_n 1_o sam._n 21.10_o 13._o or_o when_o their_o spirit_n be_v thereby_o defile_v and_o mud_v as_o the_o word_n in_o the_o original_a here_o signify_v with_o passion_n against_o the_o instrument_n of_o their_o trouble_n mat._n 26.51_o which_o hazard_n be_v import_v in_o this_o dissuasive_a give_v to_o those_o that_o suffer_v for_o righteousness_n fear_v not_o their_o fear_n neither_o be_v trouble_v 4._o they_o who_o are_z sle_z to_o the_o righteousness_n of_o jesus_n christ_n and_o desire_v to_o adhere_v to_o that_o which_o be_v right_a in_o his_o sight_n notwithstanding_o of_o suffer_v have_v no_o cause_n to_o fear_v what_o flesh_n can_v do_v unto_o they_o or_o to_o have_v their_o spirit_n perturb_v under_o the_o hard_a of_o their_o su●●●●ings_n consider_v that_o what_o ever_o they_o suffer_v be_v according_a to_o the_o lord_n fore-appointment_n 1_o thess_n 3.3_o and_o carve_v out_o by_o his_o all-ruling_a providence_n mat._n 10.30_o that_o they_o have_v the_o promise_n of_o his_o presence_n with_o they_o under_o th●_n suffering_n heb._n 13.5_o 6._o and_o be_v sure_a of_o a_o glorious_a iss●●_n out_o of_o they_o 1_o cor._n 4.17_o upon_o which_o ground_n 〈◊〉_d ought_v to_o banish_v fleshly_a fear_n and_o perturbation_n out_o of_o 〈◊〉_d heart_n as_o the_o apostle_n here_o exhort_v fear_v not_o their_o ●ea●_n neither_o be_v trouble_v verse_n 15._o but_o sanctify_v the_o lord_n god_n in_o your_o heart_n and_o be_v ready_a always_o to_o give_v a_o answer_n to_o every_o man_n that_o ask_v you_o a_o reason_n of_o the_o hope_n that_o be_v in_o you_o with_o meekness_n and_o fear_n this_o verse_n contain_v some_o further_a direction_n to_o persecute_a christian_n for_o attain_v to_o a_o right_a frame_n of_o spirit_n and_o carriage_n under_o their_o suffering_n the_o second_o in_o order_n be_v that_o they_o shall_v reverence_v and_o adore_v in_o their_o heart_n the_o sovereignty_n and_o holiness_n of_o god_n especial_o in_o that_o dispensation_n of_o he_o towards_o they_o in_o put_v they_o to_o suffer_v while_o their_o wicked_a persecutor_n prosper_v which_o direction_n as_o also_o the_o former_a be_v take_v out_o of_o isa_n 8.12_o 13._o the_o three_o be_v that_o they_o shall_v timous_o furnish_v themselves_o with_o such_o clear_a knowledge_n of_o the_o truth_n that_o they_o may_v be_v able_a to_o hold_v forth_o from_o the_o word_n of_o god_n reason_n of_o what_o they_o believe_v and_o suffer_v for_o the_o four_o be_v that_o their_o testimony_n for_o the_o truth_n shall_v be_v season_v with_o meekness_n even_o towards_o their_o persecutor_n and_o the_o five_o be_v that_o they_o shall_v entertain_v in_o their_o heart_n some_o holy_a fear_n of_o miscarry_v in_o the_o way_n of_o give_v that_o testimony_n hence_o learn_v 1._o it_o be_v a_o principal_a part_n of_o a_o right_a disposition_n for_o sufferer_n to_o entertain_v in_o their_o heart_n the_o sense_n and_o acknowledgement_n of_o the_o holiness_n of_o god_n who_o though_o he_o be_v matchless_a in_o holiness_n 1_o sam._n 2.2_o and_o can_v have_v nothing_o add_v to_o that_o or_o any_o other_o of_o his_o infinite_a perfection_n by_o any_o creature_n rom._n 11.35_o 36._o yet_o do_v esteem_v himself_o sanctify_v in_o the_o heart_n of_o his_o own_o while_o they_o be_v by_o the_o consideration_n of_o his_o holiness_n make_v submissive_a to_o the_o hard_a of_o his_o dispensation_n towards_o they_o psal_n 22.3_o afraid_a to_o offend_v so_o holy_a a_o majesty_n isa_n 29.23_o and_o thereby_o also_o be_v confirm_v in_o the_o faith_n of_o his_o perform_v all_o his_o promise_n psal_n 111.9_o and_o execute_v of_o his_o threaten_n upon_o his_o enemy_n and_o they_o ●●b_n 1.12_o for_o this_o be_v the_o apostle_n second_o direction_n for_o attain_v to_o a_o right_a frame_n of_o spirit_n under_o suffering_n sanctify_v the_o lord_n god_n in_o your_o heart_n 2._o the_o child_n of_o the_o lord_n while_o they_o be_v under_o hard_a usage_n from_o wicked_a man_n be_v in_o great_a hazard_n not_o only_o to_o forget_v the_o sovereignty_n of_o god_n over_o they_o to_o use_v they_o as_o he_o please_v for_o his_o own_o glory_n which_o occasion_v much_o perturbation_n of_o spirit_n in_o they_o isa_n 51.12_o 13._o but_o likewise_o to_o entertain_v in_o their_o heart_n thought_n unsuitable_a to_o the_o holiness_n and_o purity_n of_o his_o nature_n as_o if_o their_o suffering_n and_o the_o wicked_n prosperity_n be_v not_o consistent_a therewith_o both_o which_o be_v import_v in_o this_o exhortation_n to_o acknowledge_v the_o holiness_n of_o god_n who_o the_o apostle_n represent_v under_o such_o name_n as_o hold_v forth_o also_o his_o sovereignty_n sanctify_v the_o lord_n god_n in_o your_o heart_n 3._o although_o the_o godly_a ought_v not_o to_o be_v anxious_a concern_v their_o furniture_n in_o a_o time_n of_o trial_n mat._n 10.19_o yet_o ought_v they_o not_o to_o neglect_v ordinary_a mean_n of_o preparation_n for_o trial_n such_o as_o the_o drinking-in_a of_o the_o solid_a and_o clear_a knowledge_n of_o the_o truth_n 1_o tim._n 6.19_o entertain_v the_o presence_n of_o that_o spirit_n who_o reveal_v truth_n not_o yet_o know_v and_o bring_v know_v truth_n to_o remembrance_n when_o it_o be_v necessary_a joh._n 19.26_o that_o so_o they_o may_v be_v able_a to_o defend_v the_o truth_n by_o holy_a reason_n draw_v from_o the_o scripture_n or_o make_v apology_n for_o it_o as_o the_o word_n here_o signify_v and_o answer_v objection_n that_o may_v be_v make_v against_o the_o same_o prov._n 15.28_o as_o be_v import_v in_o this_o three_o direction_n be_v ready_a always_o to_o answer_v every_o man_n that_o ask_v you_o a_o reason_n of_o the_o hope_n that_o be_v in_o you_o 4._o although_o in_o some_o case_n the_o child_n of_o the_o lord_n may_v safe_o answer_v their_o adversary_n with_o silence_n to_o wit_n when_o they_o have_v sufficient_o and_o frequent_o bear_v testimony_n to_o such_o truth_n before_o mat._n 27.12_o 14._o or_o when_o question_n be_v propound_v to_o they_o by_o wicked_a man_n out_o of_o scorn_n prov._n 26.5_o or_o curiosity_n luke_n 23.8_o 9_o 11._o or_o to_o be_v a_o snare_n to_o the_o godly_a isa_n 36.21_o yet_o ought_v they_o still_o to_o keep_v themselves_o in_o a_o readiness_n of_o mind_n and_o fitness_n of_o disposition_n for_o defend_v the_o truth_n and_o give_v a_o reason_n of_o what_o they_o hold_v when_o the_o glow_n y_fw-fr of_o god_n and_o edification_n of_o other_o call_v for_o it_o the_o season_n and_o manner_n whereof_o every_o humble_a waiter_n on_o god_n shall_v know_v from_o he_o luke_n 12.11_o 12._o and_o 21.14_o 15._o hab._n 2.1_o for_o the_o apostle_n do_v not_o direct_v they_o here_o to_o answer_v always_o every_o man_n that_o ask_v they_o but_o to_o be_v ready_a always_o to_o answer_v every_o one_o that_o ask_v a_o reason_n 5._o the_o child_n of_o the_o lord_n ought_v not_o to_o satisfy_v themselves_o with_o any_o confidence_n or_o persuasion_n concern_v the_o truth_n of_o the_o gospel_n whereof_o they_o have_v not_o such_o clear_a and_o rational_a ground_n from_o the_o word_n as_o may_v not_o only_o convince_v themselves_o but_o such_o as_o they_o be_v able_a to_o hold_v forth_o to_o other_o when_o they_o be_v
intention_n in_o die_v that_o he_o may_v lead_v we_o by_o the_o hand_n as_o the_o word_n here_o signify_v and_o give_v we_o ready_a access_n to_o a_o reconcile_a god_n he_o have_v suffer_v for_o sin_n the_o just_a for_o the_o unjust_a that_o he_o may_v bring_v we_o unto_o god_n 6._o no_o lesser_a degree_n of_o suffer_v can_v be_v accept_v from_o our_o cautioner_n than_o the_o suffering_n of_o death_n there_o be_v no_o other_o way_n except_o all_o have_v eternal_o die_v to_o illustrate_v the_o exact_a justice_n and_o righteousness_n of_o god_n in_o punish_v sin_n rom._n 3.24_o 25._o and_o his_o faithfulness_n in_o execute_v that_o just_a threaten_n gen._n 2.17_o to_o take_v away_o the_o sting_n out_o of_o the_o first_o death_n to_o his_o own_o 1_o cor._n 15.55_o and_o keep_v they_o from_o taste_v of_o the_o second_o joh._n 8.51_o for_o which_o cause_n the_o apostle_n here_o affirm_v of_o our_o mediator_n that_o he_o suffer_v be_v put_v to_o death_n 7_o although_o christ_n do_v true_o humble_v himself_o even_o in_o respect_n of_o his_o deity_n by_o assume_v frail_a flesh_n in_o a_o personal_a union_n therewith_o joh._n 1.14_o and_o obscure_v the_o glory_n thereof_o for_o a_o time_n with_o the_o vail_n of_o flesh_n philip._n 2.6_o 7._o yet_o the_o godhead_n be_v altogether_o impassable_a his_o suffering_n be_v proper_o in_o his_o humanity_n to_o wit_n both_o in_o his_o soul_n which_o suffer_v the_o unspeakable_a wrath_n of_o god_n joh._n 12.17_o mat._n 26.38_o and_o in_o his_o body_n which_o suffer_v all_o sort_n of_o torment_n whereof_o it_o be_v capable_a luke_n 22.44_o both_o which_o part_n of_o humane_a nature_n be_v here_o comprehend_v in_o one_o because_o his_o soul_n suffer_v only_o while_o it_o be_v dwell_v in_o flesh_n before_o his_o death_n be_v put_v to_o death_n in_o the_o flesh_n 8._o our_o cautioner_n have_v pay_v our_o debt_n can_v not_o be_v hold_v in_o the_o prison_n of_o death_n but_o by_o the_o power_n of_o his_o own_o spirit_n or_o godhead_n which_o be_v essential_o one_o be_v quicken_v in_o his_o humanity_n by_o the_o union_n of_o his_o soul_n to_o his_o body_n and_o raise_v up_o as_o a_o evidence_n that_o he_o be_v discharge_v of_o our_o debt_n and_o we_o in_o he_o rom._n 4.25_o as_o a_o pledge_n that_o we_o shall_v be_v quicken_v by_o the_o virtue_n of_o his_o resurrection_n to_o newness_n of_o life_n rom._n 6.4_o etc._n etc._n and_o after_o death_n raise_v to_o possess_v glory_n with_o he_o 1_o cor._n 15.20_o for_o he_o be_v put_v to_o death_n in_o the_o flesh_n but_o quicken_v by_o the_o spirit_n 9_o all_o the_o consideration_n of_o our_o suffer_a mediator_n whereof_o the_o apostle_n do_v here_o mention_v several_a be_v strong_a inducement_n to_o his_o redeem_a people_n to_o suffer_v for_o he_o when_o he_o call_v they_o to_o that_o honour_n for_o so_o may_v every_o particular_a here_o mention_v be_v apply_v that_o since_o the_o son_n of_o god_n be_v so_o innocent_a and_o just_a do_v suffer_v and_o by_o suffering_n do_v so_o complete_o satisfy_v justice_n for_o so_o mis-deserving_a wretch_n and_o do_v suffer_v to_o the_o very_a death_n for_o so_o sweet_a a_o end_n to_o bring_v sinner_n to_o god_n and_o have_v so_o glorious_a in_o outgate_n it_o become_v all_o his_o redeem_a one_o to_o adventure_v cheerful_o upon_o suffer_v for_o he_o to_o which_o every_o expression_n h●●e_o may_v be_v apply_v as_o a_o motive_n for_o even_o christ_n have_v suffer_v for_o sin_n the_o just_a for_o the_o unjust_a that_o he_o may_v bring_v we_o to_o god_n be_v put_v to_o death_n in_o the_o flesh_n but_o quicken_v through_o the_o spirit_n verse_n 19_o by_o which_o also_o he_o go_v and_o preach_v unto_o the_o spirit_n in_o prison_n 20._o which_o sometime_o be_v disobedient_a when_o once_o the_o long-suffering_a of_o god_n wait_v in_o the_o day_n of_o noah_n while_o the_o ark_n be_v a_o prepare_v wherein_o few_o that_o be_v eight_o soul_n be_v save_v by_o water_n here_o be_v the_o seven_o argument_n press_v upon_o christian_n constant_a obedience_n to_o the_o gospel_n notwithstanding_o of_o hard_a suffering_n the_o sum_n whereof_o be_v that_o since_o there_o be_v many_o soul_n of_o man_n and_o woman_n to_o who_o christ_n do_v once_o by_o his_o spirit_n in_o the_o ministry_n of_o noah_n and_o other_o of_o his_o servant_n make_v plain_a the_o way_n to_o life_n and_o salvation_n who_o be_v now_o imprison_v in_o hell_n for_o evermore_o because_o of_o their_o slight_n so_o much_o patience_n and_o pain_n as_o the_o lord_n do_v exercise_v towards_o they_o especial_o during_o the_o time_n of_o noah_n prepare_v the_o ark_n wherein_o a_o few_o only_o escape_v destruction_n by_o the_o flood_n therefore_o it_o do_v concern_v those_o who_o have_v the_o gospel_n more_o clear_o preach_v to_o they_o to_o give_v obedience_n thereunto_o whatever_o they_o may_v suffer_v for_o it_o within_o time_n hence_o learn_v 1._o the_o second_o person_n of_o the_o bless_a trinity_n have_v be_v exercise_v his_o mediatory_a office_n long_o before_o his_o incarnation_n and_o by_o his_o spirit_n the_o three_o person_n speak_v through_o his_o servant_n have_v be_v public_o invite_v sinner_n to_o repentance_n and_o faith_n in_o himself_o for_o this_o preach_n to_o the_o old_a world_n here_o speak_v of_o must_v be_v the_o same_o in_o substance_n with_o that_o which_o be_v more_o clear_o hold_v forth_o now_o under_o the_o gospel_n it_o be_v jesus_n christ_n the_o same_o yesterday_o and_o to_o day_n and_o for_o ever_o heb._n 13.8_o who_o do_v then_o preach_v by_o his_o spirit_n who_o speak_v his_o mind_n only_o job_n 10.13_o 14._o by_o which_o he_o go_v and_o preach_v 2._o when_o the_o mind_n of_o christ_n be_v plain_o hold_v forth_o by_o the_o ministry_n of_o his_o servant_n than_o christ_n himself_o come_v to_o they_o to_o bestow_v himself_o and_o fellowship_n with_o he_o by_o his_o spirit_n upon_o they_o that_o receive_v his_o word_n and_o to_o deal_v with_o other_o in_o wrath_n as_o if_o they_o have_v reject_v he_o immediate_o and_o in_o his_o own_o person_n deal_v with_o they_o for_o though_o christ_n do_v not_o preach_v in_o person_n to_o the_o old_a world_n but_o only_o in_o the_o ministry_n of_o noah_n and_o other_o of_o his_o servant_n yet_o of_o he_o it_o be_v here_o say_v that_o by_o his_o spirit_n he_o go_v and_o preach_v 3._o it_o please_v the_o lord_n to_o invite_v to_o repentance_n and_o make_v offer_n of_o his_o grace_n unto_o many_o who_o will_v never_o obey_v his_o counsel_n nor_o embrace_v his_o offer_n that_o he_o may_v make_v his_o grace_n more_o manifest_a while_o he_o do_v more_o effectual_o prevail_v with_o his_o own_o that_o be_v among_o they_o act._n 18.10_o and_o may_v take_v away_o all_o excuse_n from_o they_o that_o wilful_o disobey_v his_o counsel_n and_o reject_v his_o offer_n joh._n 15.22_o for_o there_o be_v spirit_n or_o soul_n who_o once_o have_v christ_n preach_v to_o they_o that_o be_v now_o in_o prison_n 4._o the_o soul_n of_o man_n and_o woman_n do_v not_o 〈◊〉_d to_o nothing_o nor_o die_v as_o their_o body_n but_o so_o soon_o as_o they_o be_v separate_v from_o the_o body_n must_v either_o go_v immediate_o to_o the_o place_n of_o blessedness_n luke_n 23.43_o or_o else_o to_o this_o place_n of_o their_o everlasting_a imprisonment_n for_o though_o it_o can_v not_o be_v tell_v where_o their_o body_n be_v that_o drown_v in_o the_o ●●ood_a yet_o their_o soul_n be_v to_o the_o fore_n and_o 〈◊〉_d spirit_n in_o prison_n 5._o hell_n be_v a_o place_n of_o safe_a custody_n 〈◊〉_d ●●ame_n of_o it_o here_o import_v where_o there_o be_v no_o 〈…〉_o devil_n and_o damn_a soul_n to_o torment_v one_o another_o out_o of_o which_o there_o be_v no_o possibility_n of_o escape_v for_o by_o this_o prison_n can_v be_v mean_v nothing_o else_o but_o hell_n which_o elsewhere_o in_o scripture_n have_v this_o same_o name_n rev._n 20.7_o it_o be_v the_o place_n where_o only_o the_o spirit_n of_o they_o who_o be_v disobedient_a to_o the_o lord_n be_v now_o in_o prison_n 6._o of_o all_o the_o sin_n that_o man_n and_o woman_n commit_v who_o have_v the_o way_n of_o salvation_n true_o preach_v to_o they_o this_o be_v of_o the_o high_a nature_n and_o the_o chief_a cause_n of_o their_o damnation_n that_o they_o will_v not_o be_v persuade_v to_o accept_v the_o offer_n of_o god_n grace_n and_o mercy_n in_o christ_n will_v not_o obey_v the_o sweet_a direction_n of_o his_o word_n will_v not_o follow_v the_o motion_n and_o strive_n of_o his_o spirit_n with_o they_o thereby_o in_o which_o course_n whosoever_o do_v continue_v they_o look_v like_o those_o that_o be_v appoint_v for_o the_o prison_n of_o hell_n for_o it_o be_v clear_a by_o compare_v this_o text_n with_o gen._n 6.3_o that_o these_o here_o speak_v of_o have_v
offer_n of_o forgiveness_n of_o sin_n and_o eternal_a life_n through_o the_o messiah_n invitation_n to_o repentance_n and_o holy_a walk_n and_o some_o motion_n of_o his_o spirit_n work_v with_o his_o word_n and_o yet_o though_o they_o be_v guilty_a of_o many_o gross_a and_o filthy_a sin_n as_o appear_v by_o the_o six_o and_o seven_o chapter_n of_o genesis_n their_o disobedience_n to_o the_o gospel_n or_o unwillingness_n to_o be_v persuade_v thereby_o as_o the_o word_n signify_v be_v here_o set_v down_o as_o the_o chief_a cause_n of_o their_o perpetual_a imprisonment_n in_o hell_n those_o spirit_n be_v in_o prison_n who_o sometime_o be_v disobedient_a 7._o the_o lord_n do_v not_o at_o the_o first_o give_v over_o deal_n with_o despiser_n of_o his_o save_a counsel_n and_o rejecter_n of_o his_o bless_a offer_n but_o do_v defer_v their_o deserve_a punishment_n and_o draw_v out_o his_o patience_n in_o length_n towards_o they_o as_o the_o word_n here_o signify_v that_o they_o may_v be_v the_o more_o inexcusable_a and_o he_o may_v have_v the_o glory_n of_o long-suffering_a and_o patience_n after_o it_o be_v expire_v for_o upon_o those_o who_o be_v now_o in_o prison_n the_o long-suffering_a of_o god_n once_o wait_v in_o the_o day_n of_o noah_n 8._o 〈◊〉_d length_n of_o time_n can_v make_v the_o lord_n forget_v his_o 〈◊〉_d which_o in_o penitent_a sinner_n have_v abuse_v even_o when_o 〈◊〉_d be_v in_o hell_n he_o will_v remember_v they_o and_o make_v 〈…〉_o remember_v their_z for_o the_o increase_n of_o their_o 〈…〉_o torment_v and_o vexation_n luke_n 16.25_o for_o here_o the_o spirit_n of_o the_o lord_n speak_v by_o this_o apostle_n declare_v to_o the_o world_n that_o he_o be_v mindful_a of_o the_o despise_n of_o his_o patience_n and_o pain_n manifest_v many_o thousand_o year_n ago_o towards_o they_o that_o be_v now_o in_o hell_n once_o the_o long-suffering_a of_o god_n wait_v in_o the_o day_n of_o noah_n etc._n etc._n 9_o even_o those_o who_o may_v have_v good_a hope_n through_o grace_n that_o they_o be_v deliver_v from_o the_o pit_n of_o destruction_n aught_o to_o consider_v the_o woeful_a case_n of_o they_o that_o be_v there_o as_o a_o mean_a to_o keep_v they_o from_o provoke_v the_o lord_n by_o those_o sin_n which_o bring_v soul_n to_o that_o prison_n and_o as_o a_o motive_n unto_o thankfulness_n to_o jesus_n christ_n and_o constancy_n in_o duty_n to_o he_o notwithstanding_o of_o temporary_a suffering_n who_o have_v deliver_v they_o from_o the_o same_o for_o here_o the_o case_n of_o the_o damn_a for_o disobedience_n to_o the_o gospel_n be_v present_v by_o the_o apostle_n to_o the_o consideration_n of_o those_o who_o as_o he_o suppose_v in_o the_o former_a word_n may_v comfort_v themselves_o in_o their_o exemption_n from_o wrath_n by_o christ_n suffering_n as_o a_o argument_n to_o constancy_n in_o holiness_n notwithstanding_o of_o hard_a usage_n from_o man_n which_o be_v the_o apostle_n scope_n to_o press_v 10._o when_o the_o lord_n vouchsafe_v to_o send_v his_o word_n unto_o a_o people_n he_o use_v also_o with_o it_o to_o frame_v his_o working_n and_o dispensation_n so_o as_o may_v be_v most_o fit_v for_o bearing-in_a his_o word_n upon_o they_o that_o if_o they_o reject_v and_o slight_a both_o their_o stripe_n may_v be_v double_a for_o beside_o that_o christ_n go_v and_o preach_v to_o the_o old_a world_n he_o make_v a_o work_n to_o be_v wrought_v before_o their_o eye_n which_o be_v a_o visible_a preach_n of_o wrath_n to_o come_v upon_o they_o except_o they_o do_v repent_v and_o a_o real_a invitation_n of_o they_o to_o repentance_n that_o they_o see_v such_o a_o small_a vessel_n in_o comparison_n of_o the_o great_a multitude_n that_o be_v upon_o the_o face_n of_o the_o earth_n every_o one_o may_v have_v study_v to_o be_v one_o of_o those_o who_o may_v have_v have_v entry_n into_o it_o he_o go_v and_o preach_v and_o his_o long-suffering_a wait_v while_o the_o ark_n be_v a_o prepare_v 11._o whensoever_o the_o lord_n have_v judgement_n to_o bring_v upon_o the_o generality_n of_o a_o people_n it_o be_v his_o way_n to_o provide_v sufficient_a mean_n of_o safety_n for_o his_o own_o that_o be_v among_o they_o sometime_o from_o the_o outward_a judgement_n as_o here_o and_o always_o from_o the_o evil_n of_o it_o psal_n 91.10_o for_o while_o judgement_n be_v approach_v upon_o the_o old_a world_n the_o ark_n be_v a_o prepare_v wherein_o few_o that_o be_v eight_o soul_n be_v save_v 12._o though_o there_o never_o be_v nor_o will_v be_v at_o any_o time_n want_v some_o true_a believer_n in_o jesus_n christ_n in_o regard_n of_o his_o stand_a relation_n of_o a_o husband_n and_o head_n to_o the_o church_n yet_o so_o far_o may_v profanity_n or_o error_n overspread_v the_o face_n of_o the_o church_n that_o the_o number_n of_o visible_a professor_n may_v be_v very_o few_o and_o therefore_o the_o multitude_n of_o such_o can_v be_v no_o real_a mark_n of_o the_o true_a church_n for_o here_o in_o all_o the_o world_n there_o be_v but_o a_o few_o and_o of_o those_o a_o great_a part_n wicked_a for_o what_o may_v be_v gather_v from_o the_o scripture_n history_n that_o be_v eight_o soul_n save_v by_o water_n 13._o it_o may_v fare_v the_o better_a with_o the_o wicked_a in_o this_o life_n though_o nothing_o in_o that_o which_o be_v to_o come_v that_o they_o have_v be_v in_o society_n with_o the_o godly_a and_o have_v outward_a relation_n to_o they_o partly_o for_o the_o more_o satisfaction_n and_o encouragement_n of_o the_o godly_a who_o be_v tie_v to_o they_o by_o natural_a bond_n or_o affection_n and_o partly_o that_o they_o may_v be_v some_o way_n serviceable_a to_o the_o godly_a in_o the_o work_n of_o the_o lord_n for_o which_o cause_n among_o other_o there_o be_v here_o eight_o soul_n whereof_o some_o be_v of_o a_o wicked_a disposition_n and_o curse_a gen._n 9.22_o 25._o save_v by_o water_n 14._o the_o lord_n can_v make_v that_o which_o be_v the_o mean_a of_o destruction_n to_o the_o wicked_a a_o mean_a of_o safety_n to_o his_o own_o for_o the_o water_n which_o drown_v the_o rest_n of_o the_o world_n bear_v up_o the_o ark_n and_o so_o prove_v a_o mean_a of_o the_o safety_n of_o there_o eight_o who_o be_v save_v by_o water_n verse_n 21._o the_o like_a figure_n whereunto_o even_o baptism_n do_v also_o now_o save_v we_o not_o the_o put_v away_o of_o the_o filth_n of_o the_o flesh_n but_o the_o answer_n of_o a_o good_a conscience_n towards_o god_n by_o the_o resurrection_n of_o jesus_n christ_n the_o eight_o encouragement_n to_o constancy_n in_o suffer_v for_o christ_n and_o his_o truth_n be_v that_o since_o believer_n have_v a_o spiritual_a privilege_n answerable_a to_o the_o ark_n seal_v their_o safety_n from_o the_o diludge_n of_o god_n wrath_n to_o wit_n their_o baptism_n not_o the_o external_a part_n of_o it_o alone_o which_o can_v only_o remove_v the_o filth_n of_o the_o body_n but_o the_o internal_a to_o wit_n the_o application_n of_o christ_n blood_n to_o the_o conscience_n of_o believer_n which_o the_o apostle_n express_v here_o by_o the_o effect_n thereof_o that_o thereby_o believer_n may_v challenge_v all_o christ_n purchase_n as_o they_o and_o answer_v all_o challenge_n to_o the_o contrary_a and_o that_o upon_o this_o ground_n that_o their_o cautioner_n be_v absolve_v from_o their_o debt_n whereof_o his_o resurrection_n be_v the_o evidence_n therefore_o they_o have_v no_o reason_n to_o faint_v in_o follow_v their_o duty_n or_o fear_v to_o be_v lose_v in_o the_o midst_n of_o their_o suffering_n hence_o learn_v 1._o whatever_o outward_a privilege_n any_o of_o the_o lord_n people_n have_v of_o old_a when_o he_o be_v work_v in_o a_o more_o extraordinary_a way_n than_o now_o every_o ordinary_a believer_n may_v find_v in_o jesus_n christ_n a_o spiritual_a privileage_n answerable_a to_o it_o faith_n can_v seed_v upon_o christ_n the_o bread_n from_o heaven_n joh._n 6.32_o 35._o as_o the_o israelite_n do_v upon_o the_o manna_n it_o can_v draw_v spiritual_a life_n and_o health_n from_o he_o as_o the_o sting_a israelite_n have_v health_n to_o their_o body_n by_o look_v to_o the_o brazen_a serpent_n joh._n 3.15_o 16._o and_o can_v find_v spiritual_a and_o eternal_a safety_n in_o he_o through_o his_o own_o mean_n as_o in_o a_o ark_n when_o other_o be_v perish_v in_o the_o deludge_n of_o his_o wrath_n for_o though_o believer_n in_o the_o apostle_n time_n have_v not_o such_o a_o extraordinary_a way_n of_o preservation_n from_o persecution_n as_o noah_n and_o the_o few_o with_o he_o have_v from_o the_o flood_n yet_o they_o have_v a_o spiritual_a privilege_n answerable_a to_o it_o and_o of_o a_o far_o better_a nature_n the_o like_a figure_n whereunto_o baptism_n do_v also_o now_o save_v we_o 2._o baptism_n do_v in_o a_o spiritual_a sense_n resemble_v the_o ark_n in_o so_o far_o as_o few_o in_o comparison_n of_o
of_o their_o union_n with_o he_o who_o suffer_v for_o they_o certify_v of_o the_o mortification_n of_o sin_n rom._n 6.6_o and_o so_o encourage_v in_o the_o battle_n against_o it_o and_o by_o his_o love_n manifest_v in_o his_o suffering_n powerful_o constrain_v never_o to_o take_v pleasure_n in_o that_o which_o put_v he_o to_o so_o much_o pain_n and_o do_v so_o much_o grieve_v his_o holy_a spirit_n 2_o cor._n 5.14_o 15._o therefore_o the_o apostle_n speak_v of_o their_o c●asing_n from_o sin_n as_o a_o thing_n already_o do_v in_o regard_n of_o the_o certainty_n of_o it_o and_o their_o obligation_n to_o it_o it_o be_v ordinary_a in_o scripture_n to_o affirm_v the_o duty_n of_o believer_n as_o already_o do_v by_o they_o thereby_o to_o assure_v they_o that_o it_o shall_v be_v do_v and_o to_o oblige_v they_o the_o more_o strong_o to_o the_o study_n of_o it_o col_n 3.9_o 10._o he_o that_o have_v suffer_v in_o the_o flesh_n have_v cease_v from_o sin_n verse_n 2._o that_o he_o no_o long_o shall_v live_v the_o rest_n of_o his_o time_n in_o the_o flesh_n to_o the_o lust_n of_o man_n but_o to_o the_o will_n of_o god_n in_o this_o verse_n the_o apostle_n express_v the_o end_n of_o christ_n suffering_n and_o of_o believer_n interest_n therein_o the_o attain_v whereof_o shall_v be_v their_o constant_a aim_n to_o wit_n that_o no_o more_o of_o their_o time_n in_o this_o mortal_a state_n shall_v be_v spend_v in_o the_o service_n of_o those_o lust_n whereunto_o corrupt_a nature_n lead_v unregenerate_a man_n but_o that_o their_o life_n and_o time_n shall_v be_v whole_o spend_v in_o conform_v themselves_o to_o the_o will_n of_o god_n who_o give_v christ_n to_o suffer_v for_o they_o whereby_o it_o appear_v that_o the_o cease_n from_o sin_n speak_v of_o in_o the_o former_a verse_n must_v be_v understand_v of_o the_o believer_n obligation_n to_o the_o study_n of_o mortification_n of_o it_o and_o of_o christ_n undertake_v to_o make_v he_o cease_v from_o it_o as_o the_o original_a word_n there_o use_v signify_v hence_o learn_v 1._o whoever_o believe_v that_o christ_n have_v suffer_v for_o they_o shall_v think_v themselves_o thereby_o oblige_v not_o to_o give_v the_o least_o part_n of_o their_o life_n or_o time_n in_o the_o flesh_n to_o the_o service_n of_o their_o lust_n or_o to_o take_v the_o least_o part_n thereof_o from_o obedience_n to_o the_o will_n of_o god_n but_o to_o employ_v the_o same_o entire_o and_o whole_o in_o the_o mortify_n of_o sin_n wherein_o they_o shall_v have_v no_o more_o pleasure_n than_o if_o they_o be_v dead_a man_n and_o in_o conform_v themselves_o to_o the_o will_n of_o god_n in_o do_v and_o suffer_v which_o shall_v be_v the_o great_a business_n of_o their_o life_n consider_v that_o their_o time_n be_v short_a and_o their_o strength_n while_o they_o be_v in_o frail_a flesh_n but_o small_a which_o be_v here_o insinuate_v as_o a_o reason_n of_o this_o truth_n for_o this_o the_o apostle_n make_v the_o end_n of_o the_o believer_n union_n with_o suffering-christ_n and_o the_o use_n that_o he_o shall_v make_v of_o this_o privilege_n that_o christ_n have_v suffer_v for_o he_o and_o that_o he_o be_v esteem_v to_o have_v suffer_v in_o christ_n to_o wit_n that_o be_v no_o long_o shall_v live_v the_o rest_n of_o his_o time_n in_o the_o flesh_n to_o the_o lust_n of_o man_n but_o to_o the_o will_n of_o god_n 2._o christian_n can_v but_o be_v slave_n to_o their_o own_o unmortified_a corruption_n and_o servant_n to_o the_o lust_v one_o of_o another_o make_v it_o their_o very_a trade_n of_o life_n so_o to_o do_v until_o they_o do_v by_o faith_n arm_v themselves_o with_o the_o consideration_n of_o christ_n undertake_v to_o deliver_v they_o from_o that_o servitude_n and_o of_o his_o purchase_n virtue_n by_o his_o death_n for_o that_o effect_n for_o while_o the_o apostle_n exhort_v they_o thus_o to_o arm_v themselves_o that_o they_o may_v no_o long_o live_v to_o the_o lust_n of_o man_n he_o do_v clear_o import_v that_o before_o their_o so_o do_v they_o have_v be_v slave_n and_o until_o they_o do_v so_o they_o can_v not_o but_o live_v the_o rest_n of_o their_o time_n in_o the_o flesh_n to_o the_o lust_n of_o man_n 3._o then_o it_o be_v make_v clear_a to_o the_o believer_n that_o christ_n have_v suffer_v for_o he_o and_o that_o he_o be_v reckon_v to_o have_v satisfy_v god_n justice_n in_o christ_n his_o cautioner_n when_o by_o faith_n he_o draw_v virtue_n from_o christ_n to_o make_v he_o aim_v at_o the_o mortify_n of_o his_o corruption_n and_o at_o conformity_n to_o the_o reveal_v will_n of_o god_n in_o heart_n and_o practice_n for_o this_o may_v be_v look_v upon_o as_o the_o clear_a mark_n of_o those_o who_o may_v conclude_v that_o christ_n have_v suffer_v for_o they_o in_o the_o flesh_n and_o who_o be_v esteem_v to_o have_v suffer_v in_o he_o that_o they_o have_v now_o cease_v from_o sin_n and_o do_v live_v no_o long_o to_o the_o lust_n of_o man_n but_o to_o the_o will_n of_o god_n verse_n 3._o for_o the_o time_n pass_v of_o our_o life_n may_v suffice_v we_o to_o have_v wrought_v the_o will_n of_o the_o gentile_n when_o we_o walk_v in_o lasciviousness_n lust_n and_o excess_n of_o wine_n revel_n banquet_n and_o abominable_a idolatry_n the_o second_o argument_n whereby_o the_o apostle_n press_v upon_o believer_n the_o study_n of_o holiness_n especial_o that_o part_n of_o it_o which_o consist_v in_o the_o mortify_n of_o sin_n be_v that_o they_o have_v give_v too_o much_o of_o their_o time_n already_o to_o the_o service_n of_o their_o lust_n wallow_v themselves_o in_o all_o sort_n of_o vileness_n against_o both_o table_n of_o the_o law_n after_o the_o manner_n of_o the_o heathen_n among_o who_o they_o be_v scatter_v whereof_o the_o apostle_n give_v here_o some_o instance_n th●_n first_o be_v lasciviousness_n whereby_o be_v mean_v such_o open_a vileness_n and_o wantonness_n in_o sin_n as_o be_v contrary_n to_o common_a honesty_n the_o second_o he_o call_v lust_n which_o signify_v those_o strong_a and_o burn_a desire_n which_o be_v in_o unrenewed_a heart_n after_o more_o and_o more_o wickedness_n especial_o their_o sinful_a pleasure_n the_o three_o four_o and_o five_o point_v out_o their_o excess_n in_o drink_v and_o belly_n cheer_v with_o their_o shameless_a and_o unseemly_a carriage_n while_o they_o keep_v up_o a_o sinful_a society_n together_o and_o the_o last_o be_v their_o idolatry_n or_o false-worship_n in_o a_o special_a way_n detestable_a to_o god_n in_o all_o which_o step_n and_o other_o of_o that_o kind_n they_o have_v too_o long_o walk_v already_o they_o ought_v therefore_o now_o to_o think_v it_o more_o than_o time_n to_o break_v off_o that_o course_n and_o to_o consecrate_v the_o remnant_n of_o their_o time_n to_o the_o study_n of_o holiness_n for_o his_o honour_n who_o they_o have_v former_o so_o much_o dishonour_v hence_o learn_v 1._o whenever_o the_o lord_n make_v a_o gracious_a change_n upon_o the_o heart_n of_o sinner_n they_o will_v be_v so_o far_o from_o put_v off_o and_o delay_v the_o forsake_v of_o their_o sin_n till_o afterward_o that_o they_o will_v with_o grief_n look_v back_o upon_o the_o time_n they_o have_v already_o give_v way_n to_o they_o as_o very_o long_o and_o too_o long_o to_o have_v be_v employ_v that_o way_n so_o that_o they_o who_o mind_n to_o live_v any_o long_o in_o the_o course_n of_o their_o sin_n have_v no_o ground_n to_o think_v that_o they_o have_v yet_o meet_v with_o the_o power_n of_o convert_v grace_n see_v they_o say_v in_o substance_n that_o they_o have_v not_o yet_o take_v time_n enough_o to_o dishonour_n god_n and_o destroy_v their_o own_o soul_n for_o this_o be_v the_o sad_a language_n of_o every_o real_a convert_n the_o time_n pass_v of_o our_o life_n may_v suffice_v we_o to_o have_v wrought_v the_o will_n of_o the_o gentile_n 2._o the_o long_a that_o sinner_n have_v continue_v in_o the_o course_n of_o their_o sin_n and_o the_o great_a height_n of_o wickedness_n they_o have_v be_v at_o before_o their_o conversion_n the_o more_o eager_o shall_v they_o set_v about_o the_o mortify_n of_o sin_n and_o the_o more_o assiduous_a and_o serious_a shall_v they_o be_v in_o the_o study_n of_o holiness_n after_o their_o conversion_n that_o so_o they_o may_v so_o far_o as_o they_o can_v restore_v the_o lord_n to_o his_o honour_n 1_o cor._n 15.9_o 10._o reclaim_n if_o it_o be_v possible_a some_o of_o those_o who_o former_o they_o have_v harden_v in_o their_o sin_n gal._n 1.11_o and_o get_v their_o own_o heart_n loose_v from_o the_o love_n of_o those_o sin_n which_o long_a continuance_n and_o custom_n have_v deep_o root_v in_o they_o jer._n 13.23_o for_o the_o apostle_n make_v this_o a_o reason_n why_o believer_n shall_v give_v no_o part_n of_o their_o life_n or_o time_n to_o
and_o will_v not_o spare_v to_o spend_v their_o body_n and_o spirit_n and_o waste_v their_o mean_n in_o the_o service_n of_o their_o lust_n and_o can_v be_v satisfy_v with_o any_o that_o will_v not_o do_v the_o like_a as_o be_v import_v in_o the_o signification_n of_o these_o word_n they_o think_v i●_n strange_a that_o you_o run_v not_o with_o they_o to_o the_o same_o excess_n of_o riot_n 4._o profane_a man_n can_v abide_v that_o the_o godly_a shall_v be_v in_o credit_n and_o reputation_n beside_o they_o partly_o because_o of_o their_o natural_a enmity_n against_o they_o gal._n 4.29_o and_o partly_o because_o their_o way_n be_v a_o shame_n and_o reproof_n to_o they_o as_o christ_n be_v to_o his_o enemy_n joh._n 7.7_o therefore_o they_o devise_v and_o spread_v false_a calumny_n to_o hurt_v the_o credit_n as_o the_o word_n here_o signify_v of_o the_o godly_a speak_v evil_a of_o you_o 5._o even_o the_o godly_a be_v so_o little_o mortify_v to_o their_o credit_n before_o the_o world_n and_o do_v so_o little_a prize_n esteem_n with_o god_n and_o his_o people_n that_o the_o mockery_n and_o slander_n even_o of_o profane_a man_n be_v ready_a to_o prove_v great_a discouragement_n to_o they_o in_o the_o way_n of_o the_o lord_n for_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n find_v it_o necessary_a here_o to_o guard_v against_o this_o discouragement_n by_o discover_v of_o it_o and_o threaten_v the_o slanderer_n they_o think_v strange_a that_o you_o run_v not_o with_o they_o etc._n etc._n speak_v evil_a of_o you_o who_o shall_v give_v account_n etc._n etc._n 6._o although_o the_o save_a grace_n of_o christ_n do_v not_o loose_v those_o upon_o who_o it_o be_v vouchsafe_v from_o the_o relation_n they_o may_v have_v to_o graceless_a person_n nor_o from_o the_o duty_n of_o those_o relation_n neither_o yet_o from_o fellowship_n with_o they_o in_o necessary_a command_v duty_n 1_o cor._n 5.9_o 10._o and_o 7.12_o 13._o 1_o sam._n 11.6_o 7._o 2_o cor._n 11.20_o etc._n etc._n yet_o it_o will_v make_v they_o separate_v from_o their_o sinful_a fashion_n and_o loath_a their_o company_n in_o their_o sinful_a course_n even_o though_o they_o shall_v be_v wonder_v at_o and_o evil_n speak_v of_o for_o so_o do_v for_o the_o apostle_n import_v clear_o that_o those_o convert_v to_o who_o he_o speak_v will_v not_o now_o keep_v fellowship_n with_o their_o former_a companion_n in_o their_o sinful_a course_n whatever_o they_o may_v suffer_v at_o their_o hand_n while_o he_o say_v they_o think_v it_o strange_a that_o you_o run_v not_o with_o they_o to_o the_o same_o excess_n of_o riot_n 7._o although_o a_o long-suffering_a god_n may_v let_v wicked_a man_n have_v a_o long_a time_n of_o prosper_v in_o their_o sinful_a way_n and_o persecute_v of_o his_o belove_a people_n yea_o and_o may_v defer_v his_o reckon_n with_o they_o the_o whole_a length_n of_o their_o time_n yet_o of_o necessity_n they_o must_v all_o of_o they_o at_o last_o appear_v before_o he_o as_o their_o judge_n at_o the_o great_a day_n when_o both_o those_o of_o they_o that_o have_v die_v before_o that_o time_n and_o such_o as_o shall_v then_o be_v find_v live_v must_v be_v present_a to_o give_v account_n to_o he_o that_o judge_v quick_a and_o dead_a 8._o the_o delay_n of_o the_o last_o reckon_n with_o wicked_a man_n be_v not_o because_o the_o lord_n be_v not_o ready_a for_o that_o work_n but_z because_o there_o be_v yet_o a_o number_n of_o the_o elect_n to_o be_v gather_v rev._n 6.11_o their_o faith_n and_o patience_n be_v to_o be_v try_v rev._n 14.12_o and_o the_o wicked_a to_o be_v more_o ripen_v for_o judgement_n rev._n 14_o 15._o so_o that_o there_o be_v nothing_o upon_o the_o lord_n part_n that_o hinder_v the_o day_n of_o account_n for_o he_o be_v ready_a to_o judge_v the_o quick_a and_o the_o dead_a 9_o so_o dear_a be_v the_o lord_n people_n to_o he_o and_o so_o exact_a be_v he_o in_o his_o justice_n that_o there_o be_v not_o a_o thought_n in_o wicked_a man_n heart_n nor_o a_o word_n in_o their_o mouth_n contrary_a to_o he_o or_o his_o people_n but_o he_o take_v notice_n of_o it_o and_o will_v exact_v a_o strict_a account_n thereof_o from_o they_o for_o here_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n signify_v his_o notice-taking_a of_o their_o admire_a thought_n of_o the_o godly_a and_o their_o ill_a speech_n of_o they_o and_o assure_v his_o own_o that_o for_o these_o they_o shall_v give_v account_n to_o he_o who_o be_v ready_a to_o judge_v the_o quick_a and_o the_o dead_a 10._o although_o the_o child_n of_o the_o lord_n shall_v not_o desire_v a_o woeful_a day_n upon_o the_o most_o wicked_a for_o any_o personal_a injury_n they_o have_v receive_v from_o they_o jer._n 17.16_o nor_o rejoice_v when_o it_o come_v upon_o they_o because_o they_o be_v their_o enemy_n prov._n 24.17_o but_o rather_o shall_v pray_v for_o their_o conversion_n and_o salvation_n mat._n 5.44_o yet_o it_o be_v both_o lawful_a and_o necessary_a for_o the_o lord_n be_v suffer_v people_n to_o consider_v how_o glorious_a the_o lord_n will_v be_v in_o his_o justice_n upon_o so_o many_o of_o they_o as_o be_v irrecoverable_a and_o without_o the_o compass_n of_o his_o elect_a love_n and_o thereby_o aught_o to_o comfort_v their_o heart_n against_o their_o bitter_a flander_n and_o other_o injury_n of_o that_o kind_n for_o this_o be_v here_o give_v as_o a_o encourage_v motive_n to_o the_o study_n of_o holiness_n notwithstanding_o of_o any_o discouragement_n from_o such_o that_o they_o shall_v give_v account_n to_o he_o that_o be_v ready_a to_o judge_v the_o quick_a and_o the_o dead_a verse_n 6._o for_o for_o this_o cause_n be_v the_o gospel_n preach_v also_o to_o they_o that_o be_v dead_a that_o they_o may_v be_v judge_v according_a to_o man_n in_o the_o flesh_n but_o live_v according_a to_o god_n in_o the_o spirit_n the_o four_o argument_n to_o constancy_n in_o holiness_n notwithstanding_o of_o any_o discouragement_n from_o the_o profane_a world_n be_v that_o see_v the_o gospel_n have_v be_v preach_v to_o the_o saint_n who_o be_v now_o at_o their_o rest_n for_o this_o very_a end_n that_o they_o be_v exercise_v in_o their_o external_a condition_n with_o the_o hard_a censure_n and_o persecution_n of_o the_o profane_a may_v have_v the_o life_n of_o grace_n promote_v in_o their_o heart_n and_o so_o be_v fit_v for_o life_n eternal_a there_o be_v therefore_o no_o reason_n why_o the_o lord_n people_n shall_v be_v discourage_v in_o that_o way_n because_o of_o such_o a_o lot_n as_o all_o the_o saint_n depart_v have_v meet_v with_o doct._n 1._o all_o that_o believe_v the_o gospel_n and_o give_v up_o themselves_o to_o the_o obedience_n of_o it_o may_v resolve_v to_o have_v many_o hard_a censure_n pass_v upon_o they_o by_o those_o that_o do_v not_o profit_v by_o it_o to_o be_v judge_v by_o they_o a_o deceive_v and_o accurse_a people_n joh._n 7.47_o 49._o a_o proud_a and_o precise_a company_n who_o will_v not_o do_v as_o neighbour_n and_o other_o do_v mark_v 7.2_o 5._o to_o have_v many_o false_a calumny_n raise_v and_o spread_v of_o they_o rom._n 3.8_o and_o to_o be_v condemn_v to_o the_o worst_a usage_n that_o wicked_a man_n can_v bring_v upon_o they_o jam._n 5.6_o for_o this_o be_v here_o set_v down_o as_o the_o lot_n of_o the_o saint_n depart_v and_o the_o consequent_a of_o their_o embrace_v the_o gospel_n for_o for_o this_o cause_n the_o gospel_n be_v preach_v to_o they_o that_o be_v dead_a that_o they_o may_v be_v judge_v according_a to_o man_n in_o the_o flesh_n 2._o although_o the_o gospel_n of_o itself_o tend_v to_o the_o make_n of_o peace_n both_o with_o god_n and_o among_o those_o that_o hear_v it_o rom._n 10.14_o luke_n 19.42_o and_o the_o lord_n do_v no_o way_n approve_v profane_a man_n censure_v or_o condemn_v they_o that_o embrace_v it_o luke_n 10.6_o yet_o do_v the_o lord_n send_v the_o gospel_n among_o man_n for_o this_o very_a end_n that_o upon_o occasion_n of_o his_o people_n embrace_v of_o it_o wicked_a man_n may_v vent_v their_o natural_a enmity_n against_o he_o by_o their_o persecute_v of_o his_o people_n that_o so_o they_o may_v be_v just_o punish_v for_o that_o and_o other_o of_o their_o sin_n and_o his_o own_o people_n may_v be_v exercise_v by_o their_o opposition_n for_o their_o good_a which_o be_v just_a and_o holy_a end_n upon_o god_n part_n for_o for_o this_o cause_n be_v the_o gospel_n preach_v to_o they_o that_o be_v dead_a that_o they_o may_v be_v judge_v according_a to_o man_n etc._n etc._n 3._o it_o give_v much_o encouragement_n to_o the_o lord_n people_n in_o the_o way_n of_o their_o duty_n against_o all_o discouragement_n from_o the_o profane_a to_o consider_v first_o that_o they_o be_v not_o singular_a in_o a_o suffer_a lot_n see_v the_o same_o have_v fall_v to_o the_o saint_n before_o in_o who_o person_n god_n
as_o hot_a heb._n 12.1_o 2_o 3._o and_o especial_o that_o they_o be_v assure_v of_o one_o with_o they_o in_o the_o hot_a furnace_n of_o affliction_n they_o can_v be_v put_v in_o who_o will_v quench_v the_o violence_n of_o the_o fire_n that_o it_o shall_v not_o consume_v they_o isa_n 43.2_o 5._o therefore_o they_o shall_v not_o think_v it_o strange_a concern_v the_o fiery_a trial_n as_o though_o some_o strange_a thing_n have_v happen_v unto_o they_o 5._o one_o main_a end_n for_o which_o the_o lord_n exercise_v his_o people_n with_o fiery_a trial_n be_v that_o they_o may_v have_v proof_n of_o the_o strength_n of_o his_o grace_n in_o they_o for_o their_o comfort_n rom._n 5.3_o and_o a_o discovery_n of_o the_o weakness_n thereof_o also_o and_o of_o the_o much_o dross_n of_o corruption_n which_o be_v with_o it_o for_o their_o humiliation_n and_o purge_n isa_n 27.9_o for_o this_o the_o apostle_n affirm_v of_o the_o hot_a suffering_n of_o the_o godly_a that_o they_o be_v only_o to_o try_v they_o 6._o the_o consideration_n of_o those_o excellent_a advantage_n which_o the_o lord_n people_n have_v by_o trial_n shall_v guard_v their_o heart_n against_o offence_n thereat_o for_o this_o that_o affliction_n be_v but_o to_o try_v they_o be_v here_o hold_v forth_o as_o a_o special_a reason_n why_o they_o shall_v not_o take_v uncouth_a with_o they_o think_v it_o not_o strange_a concern_v the_o fiery_a trial_n which_o be_v to_o try_v you_o as_o though_o some_o strange_a thing_n happen_v unto_o you_o verse_n 13._o but_o rejoice_v in_o as_o much_o as_o you_o be_v partaker_n of_o christ_n suffering_n that_o when_o his_o glory_n shall_v be_v reveal_v you_o may_v be_v glad_a also_o with_o exceed_a joy_n the_o second_o direction_n for_o a_o right_a disposition_n and_o carriage_n under_o the_o cross_n for_o christ_n which_o the_o apostle_n propound_v positive_o be_v that_o they_o shall_v count_v it_o great_a matter_n of_o joy_n to_o be_v honour_v to_o suffer_v for_o christ_n and_o this_o together_o with_o the_o former_a direction_n the_o apostle_n bear_v in_o by_o two_o further_a argument_n the_o one_o i●_n that_o by_o their_o suffering_n for_o christ_n they_o be_v make_v conform_a to_o he_o in_o his_o suffering_n and_o do_v partake_v of_o the_o fruit_n of_o his_o suffering_n for_o they_o the_o other_o be_v that_o their_o suffering_n for_o christ_n be_v to_o they_o sure_a pledge_n and_o forerunner_n of_o their_o share_n with_o he_o of_o his_o glory_n at_o his_o second_o appearance_n hence_o learn_v 1._o it_o be_v not_o enough_o for_o the_o lord_n people_n to_o have_v their_o heart_n keep_v free_a of_o discouragement_n under_o the_o cross_n or_o amazement_n at_o it_o as_o a_o strange_a lot_n but_o they_o ought_v also_o to_o rejoice_v in_o their_o suffering_n for_o christ_n as_o the_o matter_n of_o their_o great_a honour_n and_o happiness_n which_o frame_n of_o spirit_n may_v be_v attain_v unto_o under_o the_o hot_a trial_n wherewith_o the_o lord_n people_n can_v be_v exercise_v for_o after_o the_o apostle_n have_v exhort_v they_o not_o to_o think_v it_o strange_a concern_v the_o fiery_a trial_n he_o add_v this_o second_o direction_n but_o rejoice_v etc._n etc._n 2._o those_o who_o be_v honour_v to_o suffer_v for_o christ_n do_v in_o a_o special_a manner_n partake_v of_o his_o suffering_n in_o regard_n they_o have_v a_o special_a measure_n of_o that_o wisdom_n and_o strength_n which_o he_o purchase_v by_o his_o death_n communicate_v to_o they_o under_o their_o trial_n rev._n 12.11_o be_v then_o bring_v to_o a_o near_a conformity_n with_o he_o in_o his_o estate_n of_o humiliation_n rom._n 8.29_o do_v undergo_v what_o he_o esteem_v do_v to_o himself_o act._n 9.4_o and_o do_v fill_v up_o their_o share_n of_o these_o suffering_n which_o divine_a providence_n have_v carve_v out_o for_o christ_n mystical_a col._n 1.24_o in_o all_o which_o respect_v sufferer_n may_v be_v say_v to_o partake_v of_o the_o suffering_n of_o christ_n every_o one_o whereof_o ought_v to_o be_v a_o strong_a motive_n to_o chearfulnesse_n and_o constancy_n under_o suffering_n for_o he_o for_o to_o this_o end_n do_v the_o apostle_n give_v this_o reason_n comprehend_v all_o these_o privilege_n in_o as_o much_o as_o you_o be_v partaker_n of_o the_o suffering_n of_o christ_n 3._o although_o christ_n essential_a glory_n be_v always_o one_o and_o the_o same_o heb._n 13.8_o yet_o his_o declarative_n or_o manifest_a glory_n be_v sometime_o much_o hide_v and_o veil_v as_o it_o be_v in_o a_o special_a way_n during_o the_o time_n of_o his_o personal_a humiliation_n joh._n 17.5_o and_o will_v be_v so_o in_o a_o great_a measure_n till_o all_o his_o suffering-member_n share_v of_o his_o glory_n at_o the_o last_o day_n at_o which_o time_n he_o shall_v be_v clear_o manifest_v to_o be_v full_o glorious_a as_o be_v import_v in_o this_o other_o reason_n of_o joy_n in_o suffer_v for_o christ_n that_o when_o his_o glory_n shall_v be_v reveal_v you_o may_v be_v glad_a also_o etc._n etc._n 4._o the_o lord_n have_v reserve_v the_o fullness_n of_o the_o joy_n of_o his_o people_n till_o the_o time_n of_o the_o full_a manifestation_n of_o his_o own_o glory_n at_o his_o last_o appear_v that_o his_o own_o may_v long_o much_o for_o that_o day_n and_o may_v not_o take_v it_o ill_o to_o suspend_v their_o joy_n while_o his_o glory_n be_v under_o a_o vail_n for_o when_o his_o glory_n shall_v be_v reveal_v they_o shall_v be_v glad_a with_o exceed_v joy_n 5._o as_o christ_n second_o come_v will_v be_v a_o glad_a day_n to_o all_o that_o believe_v in_o he_o 2_o thess_n 1.10_o so_o there_o be_v a_o special_a measure_n of_o joy_n and_o gladness_n reserve_v for_o they_o who_o get_v grace_n to_o go_v cheerful_o through_o a_o sad_a suffering-lot_n in_o the_o world_n for_o his_o sake_n in_o the_o consideration_n whereof_o he_o do_v allow_v they_o to_o comfort_v themselves_o against_o their_o suffering_n and_o do_v not_o esteem_v it_o a_o mercenary_a disposition_n in_o they_o so_o to_o do_v for_o to_o sufferer_n be_v this_o consolation_n give_v as_o especial_o verify_v in_o they_o that_o when_o his_o glory_n shall_v be_v reveal_v they_o shall_v be_v glad_a with_o exceed_v joy_n verse_n 14._o if_o you_o be_v reproach_v for_o the_o name_n of_o christ_n happy_a be_v you_o for_o the_o spirit_n of_o glory_n and_o of_o god_n rest_v upon_o you_o on_o their_o part_n he_o be_v evil_a speak_v of_o but_o on_o your_o part_n he_o be_v glorify_v the_o apostle_n add_v to_o the_o former_a three_o argument_n several_a other_o to_o encourage_v they_o against_o their_o suffering_n the_o four_o be_v that_o even_o their_o endure_a disgraceful_a speech_n for_o christ_n shall_v prove_v a_o mean_a and_o evidence_n of_o their_o happiness_n and_o therefore_o much_o more_o their_o great_a suffering_n the_o five_o which_o explain_v their_o happiness_n be_v that_o the_o glorious_a spirit_n of_o the_o lord_n delight_v to_o reside_v in_o the_o heart_n of_o sufferer_n which_o must_v be_v understand_v of_o some_o special_a operation_n of_o his_o see_v he_o dwell_v or_o rest_v in_o the_o heart_n of_o all_o his_o own_o whether_o they_o be_v put_v to_o suffering_n or_o not_o the_o six_o be_v that_o the_o reproach_v of_o the_o godly_a be_v take_v as_o do_v against_o that_o glorious_a spirit_n of_o god_n reside_v in_o they_o and_o the_o seven_o be_v that_o their_o constant_a endure_v of_o that_o and_o other_o degree_n of_o their_o suffering_n be_v esteem_v much_o glory_n to_o that_o glorious_a spirit_n hence_o learn_v 1._o although_o even_o those_o of_o the_o lord_n people_n who_o do_v not_o decline_v suffer_v for_o he_o be_v very_o strong_o desirous_a to_o suffer_v with_o credit_n before_o man_n psal_n 119.22_o yet_o they_o ought_v to_o expect_v reproach_n as_o a_o main_a ingredient_n in_o their_o trial_n whereby_o their_o reputation_n will_v be_v st●●ned_v in_o the_o mind_n of_o many_o and_o foul_a crime_n to_o make_v they_o detestable_a lay_v to_o their_o charge_n as_o the_o word_n here_o signify_v for_o this_o be_v suppose_v to_o be_v a_o part_n of_o their_o trial_n against_o which_o the_o apostle_n here_o guard_v and_o comfort_v the●_n if_o you_o be_v reproach_v etc._n etc._n happy_a be_v you_o 2._o as_o there_o be_v several_a kind_n of_o trial_n where_o with_o the_o lord_n people_n be_v exercise_v and_o every_o one_o be_v not_o try_v with_o the_o same_o kind_n so_o the_o lord_n take_v notice_n of_o all_o the_o degree_n and_o kind_n of_o their_o trial_n be_v it_o but_o a_o envious_a look_n 1_o sam._n 18.9_o or_o the_o least_o disdainful_a gesture_n psal_n 22.7_o isa_n 58.9_o and_o will_v not_o suffer_v the_o lesser_a sort_n of_o their_o suffering_n to_o 〈◊〉_d their_o own_o consolation_n and_o reward_n and_o particular_o he_o take_v notice_n of_o all_o disgraceful_a expression_n against_o his_o people_n
which_o be_v the_o particular_a trial_n here_o speak_v of_o for_o have_v comfort_v they_o against_o fiery_a trial_n in_o the_o former_a verse_n he_o here_o comfort_v they_o against_o reproach_n if_o you_o be_v reproach_v for_o the_o name_n of_o christ_n happy_a be_v you_o 3._o even_o those_o who_o be_v not_o put_v to_o the_o hot_a kind_n of_o suffering_n be_v ready_a to_o miscarry_v and_o be_v discourage_v under_o the_o lesser_a because_o the_o best_a be_v not_o easy_o bring_v to_o deny_v their_o own_o strength_n till_o they_o be_v under_o some_o extremity_n 2_o cor._n 1.9_o for_o this_o be_v import_v in_o the_o apostle_n guard_v and_o comfort_v against_o reproach_n if_o you_o be_v reproach_v for_o the_o name_n of_o christ_n happy_a be_v you_o 4._o the_o consideration_n of_o the_o greatness_n of_o the_o reward_n which_o the_o lord_n gracious_o bestow_v upon_o the_o least_o degree_n of_o suffer_v for_o he_o shall_v make_v his_o people_n joyful_o undergo_v the_o great_a and_o most_o fiery_a of_o their_o trial_n if_o it_o be_v a_o happiness_n to_o be_v reproach_v for_o his_o sake_n it_o must_v be_v a_o great_a happiness_n to_o be_v kill_v for_o his_o sake_n for_o the_o apostle_n make_v this_o a_o reason_n why_o they_o shall_v rejoice_v under_o fiery_a trial_n that_o to_o be_v reproach_v for_o he_o be_v a_o happy_a thing_n if_o you_o be_v reproach_v for_o the_o name_n of_o christ_n happy_a be_v you_o 5._o it_o be_v not_o the_o suffering_n of_o christian_n but_o the_o cause_n for_o which_o they_o do_v suffer_v which_o make_v they_o happy_a to_o wit_n their_o suffering_n for_o the_o profession_n of_o the_o name_n of_o christ_n for_o adhere_v to_o his_o truth_n and_o their_o duty_n to_o he_o and_o out_o of_o respect_n to_o his_o glory_n for_o this_o be_v the_o qualification_n of_o a_o right_a sufferer_n who_o may_v count_v himself_o happy_a in_o his_o suffering_n if_o you_o be_v reproach_v for_o the_o name_n of_o christ_n happy_a be_v you_o 9_o the_o three_o person_n of_o the_o bless_a trinity_n be_v glorious_a in_o himself_o be_v god_n equal_a with_o the_o father_n and_o the_o son_n 1_o joh._n 5_o 7._o and_o work_v glorious_a effect_n in_o the_o heart_n where_o he_o dwell_v such_o as_o the_o bestow_n and_o increase_n of_o grace_n which_o be_v begin_v glory_n 1_o cor._n 3.18_o give_v clear_a foresight_n of_o glory_n eph._n 1.17_o and_o sometime_o sweet_a fore-tasts_a thereof_o rom._n 8.23_o in_o which_o respect_n he_o be_v here_o call_v the_o spirit_n of_o glory_n and_o of_o god_n 7._o as_o the_o spirit_n of_o the_o lord_n do_v constant_o abide_v in_o the_o heart_n of_o all_o believer_n in_o regard_n of_o some_o of_o his_o operation_n joh._n 14._o ●6_n especial_o in_o regard_n of_o his_o preserve_v the_o seed_n and_o habit_n of_o grace_n and_o keep_v the_o saint_n from_o final_a apostasy_n 1_o joh._n 3.9_o so_o he_o have_v ordinary_o a_o more_o glorious_a and_o more_o constant_a residence_n in_o regard_n of_o his_o comfortable_a and_o support_a operation_n in_o the_o heart_n of_o sufferer_n than_o of_o other_o and_o though_o he_o have_v not_o tie_v himself_o to_o fill_v the_o heart_n of_o his_o suffering-people_n always_o with_o sense_n and_o comfort_n but_o may_v withhold_v the_o same_o from_o the_o dear_a of_o they_o under_o their_o sharp_a suffering_n and_o put_v they_o to_o live_v by_o faith_n as_o it_o be_v with_o david_n and_o christ_n himself_o psal_n 22.1_o 2_o etc._n etc._n yet_o oftentimes_o their_o allowance_n of_o comfort_n be_v large_a and_o their_o enjoyment_n of_o sensible_a presence_n long_o than_o what_o other_o have_v who_o be_v not_o put_v to_o suffer_v and_o sweet_a than_o what_o themselves_o have_v have_v before_o suffer_v for_o this_o be_v here_o hold_v forth_o as_o a_o encouragement_n make_v out_o in_o a_o special_a way_n to_o sufferer_n the_o spirit_n of_o glory_n and_o of_o god_n rest_v upon_o you_o 8._o the_o true_a happiness_n of_o believer_n stand_v in_o their_o enjoyment_n of_o the_o presence_n of_o christ_n spirit_n reside_v in_o their_o heart_n and_o prove_v himself_o to_o be_v there_o by_o his_o gracious_a operation_n which_o may_v be_v have_v in_o the_o midst_n of_o sharp_a suffering_n the_o consideration_n whereof_o ought_v to_o make_v great_a joy_n in_o the_o heart_n of_o sufferer_n for_o the_o apostle_n have_v pronounce_v such_o happy_a he_o do_v explain_v their_o happinisse_fw-la which_o be_v the_o reason_n of_o their_o joy_n under_o their_o suffering_n that_o the_o spirit_n of_o glory_n and_o of_o god_n rest_v upon_o they_o 9_o the_o more_o glorious_a and_o constant_a the_o residence_n of_o christ_n spirit_n in_o the_o heart_n of_o his_o suffering-people_n appear_v to_o be_v the_o more_o enrage_a will_n their_o profane_a persecutor_n be_v to_o speak_v evil_a of_o that_o spirit_n that_o dwell_v in_o they_o which_o they_o will_v be_v esteem_v to_o do_v though_o they_o do_v not_o express_o blaspheme_v the_o spirit_n when_o they_o father_n the_o operation_n of_o the_o spirit_n upon_o satan_n mat._n 12.24.28_o or_o when_o they_o wilful_o resist_v and_o oppose_v his_o know_a mind_n deliver_v to_o they_o by_o his_o suffering-people_n act._n 7.51_o for_o though_o the_o spirit_n of_o glory_n and_o of_o god_n rest_n upon_o these_o persecute_a saint_n yet_o upon_o the_o part_n of_o their_o persecutor_n he_o be_v evil_a speak_v of_o 10._o it_o may_v allay_v to_o the_o godly_a the_o bitterness_n of_o reproach_n and_o disgraceful_a expression_n against_o they_o to_o consider_v that_o by_o those_o the_o spirit_n of_o the_o lord_n count_v himself_o evil_o speak_v of_o and_o take_v as_o do_v direct_o against_o himself_o those_o wrong_n which_o be_v do_v to_o his_o people_n who_o be_v his_o temple_n and_o his_o workmanship_n and_o will_v punish_v wicked_a man_n according_o for_o this_o may_v be_v take_v as_o a_o particular_a encouragement_n against_o reproach_n that_o even_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n be_v upon_o the_o part_n of_o they_o that_o do_v reproach_v his_o follower_n evil_o speak_v of_o 11._o the_o lord_n do_v esteem_v himself_o much_o glorify_v by_o his_o people_n constancy_n in_o suffer_v for_o he_o while_o his_o terror_n sweetness_n power_n and_o other_o property_n be_v proclaim_v and_o commend_v by_o that_o practice_n of_o his_o people_n in_o choose_v of_o affliction_n rather_o than_o sin_n against_o he_o and_o his_o esteem_v so_o of_o it_o shall_v be_v a_o strong_a motive_n to_o chearfulnesse_n and_o constancy_n in_o suffer_v for_o he_o for_o this_o the_o apostle_n express_o assert_v as_o a_o argument_n to_o constancy_n and_o chearfulnesse_n under_o suffering_n on_o your_o part_n he_o be_v glorify_v verse_n 15._o but_o let_v none_o of_o you_o suffer_v as_o a_o murderer_n or_o as_o a_o thief_n or_o as_o a_o evil_a doer_n or_o as_o a_o busybody_n in_o other_o man_n matter_n here_o be_v a_o three_o direction_n for_o attain_v to_o a_o right_a carriage_n in_o a_o time_n of_o persecution_n the_o sum_n whereof_o be_v that_o as_o they_o desire_v to_o find_v the_o sweetness_n of_o the_o former_a consolation_n which_o the_o apostle_n have_v hold_v forth_o to_o sufferer_n they_o will_v keep_v themselves_o free_a of_o those_o evil_n which_o even_o heathen_a magistrate_n under_o who_o power_n they_o live_v will_v ready_o punish_v such_o as_o wrong_v the_o person_n or_o estate_n of_o their_o neighbour_n meddle_v with_o thing_n without_o the_o bound_n of_o their_o call_n and_o other_o wickedness_n of_o that_o sort_n so_o shall_v they_o be_v the_o less_o move_v with_o their_o suffering_n hence_o learn_v 1._o it_o be_v the_o duty_n of_o those_o who_o have_v power_n and_o authority_n over_o other_o to_o prove_v themselves_o keeper_n of_o both_o the_o table_n of_o the_o law_n of_o god_n by_o punish_v without_o respect_n of_o person_n not_o only_o the_o grosser_n sort_n of_o transgression_n such_o as_o murder_v and_o theft_n whereby_o man_n injure_v the_o person_n or_o estate_n of_o their_o neighbour_n but_o also_o those_o more_o subtle_a and_o specious_a sin_n such_o as_o invade_v the_o right_n of_o other_o go_v beyond_o the_o bound_n of_o folk_n call_v which_o often_o be_v veil_v with_o the_o pretence_n of_o zeal_n for_o god_n and_o the_o public_a good_a numb_a 16.3_o which_o kind_n of_o sin_n the_o apostle_n understand_v here_o by_o be_v busy_a in_o other_o man_n matter_n yea_o all_o other_o know_v iniquity_n whether_o against_o the_o first_o table_n such_o as_o idolatry_n job_n 31.26_o 27_o 28._o blasphemy_n leu._n 24.11_o sabbath-breaking_a numb_a 15.32_o or_o against_o the_o second_o such_o as_o disobedience_n to_o parent_n deut._n 21.18_o etc._n etc._n adultery_n job_n 31.11_o all_o which_o and_o the_o like_a be_v iniquity_n to_o be_v punish_v by_o the_o judge_n and_o be_v comprehend_v here_o under_o this_o general_a clause_n evil_a doer_n for_o the_o apostle_n suppose_v here_o that_o
even_a christian_n be_v find_v guilty_a of_o any_o of_o those_o iniquity_n aught_o to_o be_v put_v to_o suffer_v for_o they_o while_o he_o give_v they_o this_o caution_n but_o let_v none_o of_o you_o suffer_v as_o a_o murderer_n or_o as_o a_o thief_n or_o as_o a_o evil_a doer_n or_o as_o a_o busybody_n in_o other_o man_n matter_n 2._o even_o nature_n light_n will_v speak_v against_o the_o toleration_n of_o several_a sort_n of_o evil_n and_o will_v not_o suffer_v man_n that_o have_v power_n and_o have_v not_o put_v out_o that_o light_n by_o frequent_a sin_v against_o it_o to_o pass_v they_o without_o punishment_n what_o a_o shame_n than_o be_v it_o for_o these_o within_o the_o church_n to_o commit_v such_o thing_n or_o tolerate_v they_o in_o other_o for_o the_o apostle_n suppose_v here_o that_o christian_n who_o live_v under_o heathen_a magistrate_n will_v certain_o be_v put_v to_o suffer_v by_o they_o if_o they_o be_v find_v murderer_n thief_n evil-doer_n or_o busybody_n in_o other_o man_n matter_n 3._o as_o it_o be_v the_o duty_n of_o every_o one_o who_o by_o their_o miscarriage_n have_v deserve_v the_o stroke_n of_o humane_a justice_n willing_o to_o submit_v to_o the_o same_o luke_n 23.41_o so_o it_o shall_v be_v the_o great_a care_n of_o the_o lord_n people_n to_o eschew_v those_o sin_n which_o may_v draw_v they_o under_o that_o stroke_n it_o be_v a_o great_a reproach_n to_o christianity_n when_o the_o professor_n of_o it_o be_v find_v guilty_a of_o those_o thing_n which_o even_o heathen_n or_o such_o as_o be_v no_o better_o can_v but_o punish_v and_o a_o great_a harden_v of_o wicked_a man_n in_o their_o evil_a way_n for_o which_o and_o the_o like_a cause_n the_o apostle_n give_v this_o three_o direction_n but_o let_v none_o of_o you_o suffer_v as_o a_o murderer_n etc._n etc._n 4._o except_o christian_n employ_v christ_n spirit_n to_o apply_v that_o virtue_n which_o he_o have_v purchase_v by_o his_o death_n for_o the_o change_n of_o their_o nature_n and_o mortify_v of_o the_o love_n of_o sin_n in_o their_o heart_n and_o study_v watchfulness_n in_o their_o carriage_n they_o will_v ready_o break_v out_o in_o those_o abomination_n for_o which_o even_a heathen_n will_v just_o put_v they_o to_o suffer_v for_o this_o direction_n of_o the_o apostle_n do_v import_v that_o except_o christian_n do_v watch_v and_o pray_v and_o make_v use_n of_o christ_n death_n for_o mortification_n of_o sin_n within_o to_o which_o duty_n he_o have_v stir_v they_o up_o before_o they_o be_v in_o hazard_n to_o break_v out_o in_o the_o sin_n here_o mention_v and_o so_o be_v put_v to_o suffer_v as_o murderer_n thief_n evil-doer_n and_o busybody_n in_o other_o man_n matter_n verse_n 16._o yet_o if_o any_o man_n suffer_v as_o a_o christian_a let_v he_o not_o be_v ashamed_a but_o let_v he_o glorify_v god_n on_o this_o behalf_n the_o apostle_n give_v some_o further_a direction_n for_o attain_v the_o forementioned_a end_n the_o four_o in_o number_n be_v imply_v in_o the_o begin_n of_o this_o verse_n that_o they_o shall_v cleave_v to_o the_o profession_n of_o the_o name_n and_o truth_n of_o christ_n carry_v themselves_o under_o their_o suffering_n as_o his_o anoint_a once_o upon_o which_o he_o infer_v the_o five_o that_o if_o they_o do_v so_o suffer_v they_o ought_v not_o to_o be_v ashamed_a of_o their_o suffering_n but_o on_o the_o contrary_a which_o be_v a_o six_o direction_n they_o shall_v take_v occasion_n from_o such_o suffering_n of_o give_v much_o glory_n to_o god_n for_o honour_v and_o enable_v they_o so_o to_o suffer_v hence_o learn_v 1._o they_o that_o will_v have_v true_a comfort_n under_o their_o suffering_n for_o christ_n must_v first_o study_v to_o be_v real_a christian_n teach_v of_o christ_n to_o know_v he_o and_o his_o will_n act._n 11.26_o to_o have_v from_o he_o the_o anoint_v of_o his_o spirit_n 1_o joh._n 2.20_o whereby_o they_o be_v make_v in_o some_o measure_n to_o resemble_v he_o in_o his_o nature_n and_o disposition_n 1_o cor._n 3.18_o 2_o pet._n 1.4_o and_o in_o his_o office_n to_o which_o he_o be_v anoint_v by_o have_v power_n over_o their_o lust_n and_o in_o his_o strength_n overcome_v all_o opposition_n in_o the_o way_n of_o their_o duty_n 1_o joh._n 5.4_o as_o anoint_a king_n to_o god_n by_o offer_v up_o themselves_o in_o a_o sacrifice_n to_o god_n rom._n 12.1_o and_o their_o service_n through_o jesus_n christ_n 1_o pet._n 2.5_o as_o a_o spiritual_a priesthood_n by_o communicate_v the_o knowledge_n of_o christ_n to_o other_o especial_o those_o under_o their_o charge_n gen._n 18.19_o whereby_o they_o do_v resemble_v he_o in_o the_o exercise_n of_o his_o prophetical_a office_n and_o especial_o to_o be_v conform_v to_o he_o in_o suffer_v for_o he_o and_o show_v forth_o that_o meekness_n and_o constancy_n and_o other_o of_o his_o communicable_a perfection_n which_o shine_v in_o he_o under_o his_o suffering_n avow_v his_o name_n and_o office_n to_o which_o he_o be_v anoint_v upon_o all_o hazard_n for_o this_o be_v to_o suffer_v as_o a_o christian_a who_o name_n be_v a_o anoint_a one_o which_o the_o apostle_n here_o imply_v as_o necessary_a for_o all_o that_o will_v taste_v the_o sweetness_n of_o the_o former_a consolation_n but_o if_o any_o man_n suffer_v as_o a_o christian_a let_v he_o not_o be_v ashamed_a 2._o profane_a christian_n who_o may_v be_v just_o put_v to_o suffer_v for_o their_o fault_n be_v very_o ready_a to_o entitle_v themselves_o to_o the_o honour_n of_o suffer_v for_o christ_n and_o therefore_o it_o concern_v christ_n minister_n to_o clear_v the_o cause_n of_o suffering_n in_o which_o christian_n may_v comfort_v themselves_o and_o the_o right_a manner_n of_o suffer_v for_o a_o right_a cause_n for_o the_o apostle_n in_o this_o and_o the_o precede_a verse_n set_v a_o guard_n about_o the_o former_a consolation_n give_v to_o sufferer_n for_o christ_n lest_o they_o may_v be_v usurp_v by_o profane_a professor_n just_o put_v to_o suffer_v for_o their_o miscarriage_n let_v none_o of_o you_o suffer_v as_o a_o murderer_n etc._n etc._n but_o if_o any_o man_n suffer_v as_o a_o christian_a let_v he_o not_o be_v ashamed_a 3._o there_o be_v no_o shame_n or_o contempt_n that_o the_o world_n can_v pour_v upon_o sufferer_n for_o christ_n whereof_o they_o ought_v to_o be_v ashamed_a but_o rather_o to_o despise_v shame_n for_o he_o as_o he_o do_v for_o we_o heb._n 12.2_o as_o they_o will_v not_o have_v he_o deal_v with_o they_o as_o if_o he_o be_v ashamed_a of_o they_o another_o day_n mark_v 8.38_o for_o this_o be_v the_o five_o direction_n if_o any_o man_n suffer_v as_o a_o christian_a let_v he_o not_o be_v ashamed_a 4._o when_o the_o lord_n by_o his_o providence_n bring_v a_o necessity_n upon_o christian_n of_o suffer_v for_o he_o and_o his_o truth_n and_o by_o his_o grace_n enable_v they_o to_o carry_v themselves_o christian_o under_o the_o same_o they_o owe_v much_o praise_n and_o glory_n to_o he_o for_o put_v that_o honour_n upon_o they_o especial_o consider_v that_o his_o grace_n alone_o have_v prevent_v their_o fall_n in_o those_o sin_n which_o may_v just_o have_v bring_v they_o to_o no_o less_o suffering_n and_o with_o far_o less_o credit_n and_o comfort_n than_o now_o while_o they_o be_v put_v to_o suffer_v for_o christ_n and_o their_o duty_n to_o he_o for_o this_o be_v the_o six_o direction_n let_v he_o glorify_v god_n on_o this_o behalf_n to_o wit_n that_o he_o be_v put_v to_o suffer_v not_o as_o a_o thief_n or_o a_o murderer_n but_o as_o a_o christian_a verse_n 17._o for_o the_o time_n be_v come_v that_o judgement_n must_v begin_v at_o the_o house_n of_o god_n and_o if_o it_o first_o begin_v at_o we_o what_o shall_v the_o end_n be_v of_o they_o that_o obey_v not_o the_o gospel_n of_o god_n here_o be_v two_o further_a argument_n to_o move_v the_o godly_a to_o courage_n and_o constancy_n under_o their_o suffering_n the_o one_o be_v that_o now_o god_n appoint_v and_o fit_a opportunity_n be_v come_v wherein_o he_o will_v have_v his_o just_a displeasure_n against_o the_o sin_n of_o man_n begin_v first_o to_o kith_v in_o his_o own_o family_n the_o church_n under_o the_o new_a testament_n by_o trouble_n and_o persecution_n for_o the_o correction_n and_o trial_n of_o his_o own_o and_o therefore_o they_o have_v no_o reason_n to_o faint_v under_o these_o trial_n see_v the_o time_n of_o they_o be_v of_o god_n appointment_n and_o that_o the_o godly_a be_v only_o to_o endure_v the_o beginning_n of_o that_o which_o will_v make_v a_o end_n of_o their_o persecutor_n the_o other_o argument_n be_v that_o see_v god_n just_a displeasure_n against_o sin_n be_v first_o manifest_v towards_o his_o own_o people_n the_o end_n of_o their_o wicked_a enemy_n behove_v to_o be_v unspeakable_o terrible_a and_o therefore_o they_o have_v no_o reason_n to_o
charge_n the_o flock_n of_o god_n 4._o although_o none_o that_o be_v sensible_a of_o their_o own_o weakness_n and_o the_o weight_n of_o the_o charge_n of_o soul_n will_v be_v very_o forward_o to_o thrust_v themselves_o into_o that_o employment_n exod._n 3.11_o jer._n 1.6_o yet_o be_v once_o call_v to_o it_o and_o engage_v therein_o they_o shall_v not_o go_v about_o the_o duty_n thereof_o as_o be_v constrain_v thereunto_o by_o their_o fear_n lest_o they_o discover_v their_o own_o weakness_n or_o lest_o they_o fall_v under_o the_o censure_n of_o other_o or_o lest_o their_o own_o conscience_n may_v vex_v they_o for_o neglect_n of_o their_o duty_n for_o this_o be_v the_o first_o evil_n from_o which_o the_o apostle_n dissuade_v christ_n minister_n as_o that_o which_o will_v mar_v the_o right_a manner_n of_o go_v about_o their_o duty_n not_o by_o constraint_n 5._o there_o shall_v be_v in_o the_o heart_n of_o every_o faithful-minister_n so_o much_o love_n to_o jesus_n christ_n arise_v from_o the_o sense_n of_o his_o personal_a obligation_n to_o he_o 2_o cor._n 5.14_o and_o so_o great_a a_o desire_n of_o the_o salvation_n of_o soul_n 1_o cor._n 10.33_o as_o may_v beget_v in_o he_o such_o a_o strong_a inclination_n and_o inward_a bensel_n of_o spirit_n to_o his_o duty_n that_o though_o there_o be_v no_o external_a consideration_n of_o gain_n glory_n or_o the_o like_a to_o hold_v he_o on_o yet_o may_v he_o not_o be_v suffer_v to_o neglect_v it_o for_o this_o be_v the_o first_o positive_a qualification_n of_o a_o minister_n go_v right_o about_o his_o duty_n but_o willing_o 6._o although_o christ_n minister_n may_v with_o his_o allowance_n challenge_v from_o the_o people_n under_o their_o charge_n a_o competent_a mean_n of_o outward_a subsistence_n according_a to_o their_o ability_n 1_o cor._n 9.14_o yet_o for_o any_o of_o the_o minister_n of_o christ_n to_o make_v their_o worldly_a gain_n their_o great_a inducement_n to_o undertake_v that_o call_v or_o their_o prime_a encouragement_n in_o go_v about_o the_o duty_n of_o it_o be_v a_o filthy_a frame_n of_o spirit_n which_o appear_v to_o be_v in_o they_o when_o they_o stretch_v themselves_o to_o the_o utmost_a to_o please_v they_o most_o from_o who_o they_o expect_v most_o gain_v numb_a 23.1_o and_o to_o oppose_v and_o discourage_v other_o from_o who_o they_o expect_v least_o mic._n 3.5_o for_o from_o this_o evil_a as_o abominable_a to_o god_n detestable_a to_o faithful_a minister_n and_o a_o thing_n that_o indispose_v they_o for_o the_o right_a discharge_n of_o their_o duty_n the_o apostle_n here_o do_v dissuade_v in_o the_o three_o direction_n not_o for_o filthy_a lucre_n 7._o a_o minister_n of_o christ_n that_o will_v go_v right_o about_o his_o duty_n must_v lie_v in_o wait_n for_o every_o opportunity_n thereof_o keep_v himself_o in_o some_o fitness_n of_o disposition_n for_o every_o part_n of_o his_o call_v whether_o the_o opportunity_n of_o discharge_v the_o particular_a duty_n thereof_o do_v present_o offer_v or_o not_o as_o be_v import_v in_o the_o four_o direction_n which_o be_v positive_a but_o of_o a_o ready_a mind_n 8._o it_o be_v a_o evil_a to_o be_v abhor_v by_o all_o that_o will_v expect_v the_o reward_n of_o faithful_a minister_n to_o affect_v or_o usurp_v any_o lordship_n or_o dominion_n whether_o over_o their_o fellow-labourer_n which_o appear_v in_o their_o seek_a preference_n over_o they_o 3_o joh._n 9_o or_o over_o the_o people_n of_o their_o charge_n which_o appear_v by_o their_o take_v a_o way_n with_o people_n rather_o to_o compel_v they_o to_o subjection_n to_o the_o gospel_n than_o to_o persuade_v they_o to_o it_o contrary_a to_o the_o apostle_n practice_n 1_o cor._n 4.21_o 2_o cor._n 12.20_o by_o their_o make_n use_v of_o the_o word_n or_o discipline_n to_o vent_v their_o own_o private_a revenge_n or_o to_o carry_v their_o point_n by_o mere_a violence_n and_o outweary_v of_o those_o that_o oppose_v they_o ezek._n 34.4_o contrary_n to_o the_o apostle_n precept_n 2_o tim._n 2.24_o 25._o for_o this_o be_v the_o three_o evil_a the_o apostle_n dissuade_v from_o in_o his_o five_o direction_n neither_o as_o be_v lord_n over_o god_n heritage_n 9_o the_o church_n and_o people_n of_o god_n be_v his_o inheritance_n which_o he_o have_v purchase_v to_o himself_o with_o his_o blood_n act._n 20.28_o in_o which_o he_o be_v the_o only_a lawgiver_n isa_n 33.22_o and_o therefore_o will_v never_o cast_v off_o or_o alienate_v the_o same_o psal_n 94.14_o the_o consideration_n whereof_o shall_v make_v all_o afraid_a to_o lord_n it_o over_o his_o people_n or_o to_o appropriate_v this_o stile_n to_o themselves_o which_o be_v here_o give_v to_o all_o the_o lord_n people_n as_o a_o motive_n to_o their_o overseer_n to_o diligence_n and_o a_o dissuasive_a from_o usurp_a dominion_n over_o they_o neither_o as_o be_v lord_n over_o god_n heritage_n 10._o that_o which_o do_v much_o complete_a the_o minister_n of_o jesus_n christ_n be_v when_o with_o their_o ability_n to_o teach_v and_o rule_v and_o other_o inward_a qualification_n they_o have_v also_o such_o a_o external_a conversation_n as_o may_v be_v allure_a to_o the_o flock_n to_o follow_v and_o worthy_a of_o their_o imitation_n while_o they_o express_v in_o their_o practice_n the_o grace_n of_o god_n to_o be_v in_o their_o heart_n such_o as_o faith_n and_o love_n 1_o tim._n 4.12_o patience_n under_o personal_a injury_n 1_o cor._n 4.16_o humility_n and_o self-denial_n for_o the_o good_a of_o other_o 1_o cor._n 10.33_o and_o 11.1_o for_o this_o be_v the_o apostle_n last_o direction_n without_o which_o all_o the_o rest_n suppose_v they_o can_v be_v where_o this_o be_v want_v will_v do_v little_a good_a but_o be_v ensample_n to_o the_o flock_n verse_n 4._o and_o when_o the_o chief_a shepherd_n shall_v appear_v you_o shall_v receive_v a_o crown_n of_o glory_n that_o fade_v not_o away_o the_o apostle_n have_v clear_v the_o duty_n of_o the_o officer_n of_o the_o church_n he_o give_v they_o here_o in_o the_o close_a of_o the_o first_o part_n of_o the_o chapter_n some_o strong_a motive_n to_o fidelity_n and_o diligence_n therein_o as_o first_o that_o there_o be_v a_o high_a shepherd_n than_o they_o to_o wit_n jesus_n christ_n the_o prince_n of_o pastor_n to_o take_v a_o account_n of_o they_o second_o that_o if_o they_o be_v find_v faithful_a and_o diligent_a in_o their_o duty_n they_o may_v be_v sure_a of_o a_o eminent_a degree_n of_o glory_n from_o christ_n at_o his_o second_o come_v three_o that_o that_o glorious_a reward_n shall_v remain_v always_o the_o same_o in_o itself_o and_o be_v eternal_o possess_v by_o they_o hence_o learn_v 1._o the_o most_o eminent_a of_o christ_n servant_n have_v no_o less_o need_n of_o encouragement_n in_o their_o duty_n than_o the_o mean_a under_o their_o charge_n their_o trial_n and_o temptation_n be_v often_o great_a than_o other_o luke_n 22.31_o and_o they_o no_o less_o subject_n to_o discouragement_n by_o reason_n of_o these_o than_o other_o cor._n 7._o 5_o 6._o therefore_o the_o spirit_n of_o the_o lord_n find_v it_o necessary_a here_o to_o give_v they_o encouragement_n as_o he_o do_v to_o the_o flock_n before_o chap._n 4.13_o 14._o and_o when_o the_o chief_a shepherd_n shall_v appear_v you_o shall_v receive_v a_o crown_n 2._o jesus_n christ_n be_v the_o chief_a shepherd_n the_o prince_n of_o pastor_n the_o prime_a feeder_n and_o ruler_n as_o the_o word_n signify_v of_o his_o own_o flock_n from_o who_o all_o the_o under-shepherd_n the_o officer_n of_o his_o house_n have_v their_o commission_n mat._n 28.18_o 19_o their_o furniture_n or_o gift_n eph._n 4.8_o 11._o and_o to_o who_o they_o must_v all_o give_v a_o account_n heb._n 13.17_o who_o take_v the_o prime_a charge_n of_o his_o own_o flock_n isa_n 40.11_o and_o will_v supply_v to_o they_o the_o defect_n of_o the_o shepherd_n under_o he_o ezek._n 34.11_o in_o all_o which_o respect_n he_o be_v here_o call_v the_o chief_a shepherd_n 3._o albeit_o the_o lord_n use_v to_o give_v in_o hand_n unto_o his_o faithful_a servant_n worth_a all_o their_o pain_n in_o his_o service_n either_o by_o let_v they_o see_v some_o success_n of_o their_o labour_n 2_o cor._n 2.14_o or_o by_o give_v they_o inward_a peace_n from_o the_o faith_n of_o his_o approbation_n when_o desire_a success_n be_v want_v isa_n 49._o 4._o yet_o he_o will_v have_v they_o take_v their_o prime_a encouragement_n from_o what_o they_o shall_v get_v when_o he_o and_o they_o meet_v for_o to_o the_o consideration_n of_o this_o the_o apostle_n here_o lead_v all_o the_o servant_n of_o christ_n when_o the_o chief_a shepherd_n shall_v appear_v you_o shall_v receive_v a_o crown_n of_o glory_n 4._o the_o reward_n abide_v christ_n faithful_a minister_n wherein_o all_o the_o lover_n of_o christ_n shall_v share_v in_o their_o own_o measure_n 2_o tim._n 4._o 8._o shall_v be_v exceed_o complete_a and_o glorious_a
as_o the_o metaphor_n of_o a_o crown_n of_o glory_n signify_v and_o such_o as_o shall_v never_o fade_v or_o wax_v old_a but_o unto_o all_o eternity_n shall_v remain_v still_o in_o its_o primitive_a vigour_n as_o if_o a_o flower_n shall_v still_o keep_v its_o fair_a lustre_n and_o sweet_a smell_n which_o metaphor_n be_v also_o in_o the_o word_n and_o this_o may_v comfort_v they_o against_o the_o fade_a of_o their_o reputation_n among_o man_n which_o be_v incident_a to_o the_o best_a joh._n 5._o 35._o gal._n 4.16_o for_o this_o be_v here_o give_v to_o the_o church-guides_a as_o their_o great_a encouragement_n that_o they_o be_v to_o receive_v a_o crown_n of_o glory_n which_o fade_v not_o away_o verse_n 5._o likewise_o you_o young_a submit_v yourselves_o unto_o the_o elder_n yea_o all_o of_o you_o be_v subject_a one_o to_o another_o and_o be_v clothe_v with_o humility_n for_o god_n resist_v the_o proud_a and_o give_v grace_n to_o the_o humble_a the_o apostle_n have_v in_o the_o former_a part_n of_o the_o chapter_n exhort_v the_o officer_n of_o the_o church_n to_o their_o duty_n in_o the_o second_o part_n he_o point_v out_o the_o duty_n of_o the_o flock_n who_o he_o design_v by_o the_o name_n of_o young_a not_o only_o because_o the_o most_o part_n of_o they_o be_v ordinary_o young_a in_o year_n than_o their_o officer_n but_o main_o because_o in_o their_o disposition_n and_o carriage_n towards_o their_o overseer_n they_o shall_v show_v some_o resemblance_n of_o that_o reverence_n and_o obedience_n which_o be_v suitable_a in_o young_a one_o towards_o the_o age_a and_o their_o duty_n he_o hold_v forth_o in_o six_o direction_n the_o first_o which_o belong_v to_o they_o consider_v only_o as_o they_o be_v under_o the_o charge_n of_o their_o officer_n be_v subjection_n to_o they_o in_o the_o lord_n which_o import_v obedience_n to_o their_o message_n and_o respect_n to_o their_o person_n the_o second_o which_o concern_v they_o main_o as_o fellow-member_n of_o the_o church_n be_v mutual_a subjection_n of_o one_o to_o another_o in_o all_o the_o duty_n of_o love_n the_o three_o which_o hold_v forth_o the_o special_a mean_n of_o attain_v to_o the_o former_a two_o be_v that_o they_o shall_v adorn_v themselves_o with_o a_o mean_a esteem_n of_o themselves_o and_o this_o the_o apostle_n press_v by_o two_o argument_n the_o one_o be_v that_o the_o lord_n oppose_v himself_o to_o they_o that_o lift_v up_o themselves_o and_o the_o other_o be_v that_o he_o give_v his_o favour_n and_o grace_n to_o they_o that_o abase_v themselves_o hence_o learn_v 1._o it_o be_v the_o duty_n of_o the_o lord_n people_n to_o be_v subject_a to_o their_o ruler_n who_o he_o have_v set_v over_o they_o in_o his_o church_n by_o submit_v to_o the_o duty_n which_o they_o press_v upon_o they_o from_o the_o word_n heb._n 13.22_o and_o to_o the_o censure_n they_o inflict_v according_a to_o the_o word_n 2_o cor._n 2.9_o by_o afford_v they_o some_o mean_n of_o outward_a subsistence_n gal._n 6.6_o and_o by_o give_v some_o respect_n to_o their_o person_n because_o of_o their_o office_n 1_o cor._n 4.1_o in_o respect_n whereof_o they_o be_v lift_v up_o by_o the_o lord_n above_o his_o people_n as_o the_o word_n here_o signify_v for_o the_o substance_n of_o the_o duty_n of_o the_o flock_n to_o their_o church_n officer_n be_v here_o by_o the_o apostle_n comprehend_v in_o this_o one_o word_n be_v subject_a 2._o whether_o the_o member_n of_o the_o church_n be_v young_a or_o elder_a in_o year_n they_o shall_v in_o reference_n to_o their_o overseer_n resemble_v that_o disposition_n and_o carriage_n which_o beseem_v young_a one_o towards_o the_o elder_a in_o their_o earnest_a desire_n of_o the_o word_n and_o mean_n of_o salvation_n administer_v by_o they_o chap._n 2.3_o by_o depend_v upon_o they_o as_o instrument_n for_o counsel_n in_o their_o difficult_a case_n mal._n 2.7_o call_v for_o their_o help_n and_o assistance_n under_o their_o cross_n jam._n 5.14_o and_o by_o their_o meek_a submission_n to_o censure_n from_o they_o heb._n 13.17_o for_o it_o be_v main_o in_o respect_n of_o the_o resemblance_n that_o shall_v be_v betwixt_o the_o disposition_n of_o the_o flock_n in_o reference_n to_o their_o pastor_n and_o overseer_n and_o that_o of_o child_n towards_o their_o parent_n or_o such_o as_o have_v the_o charge_n of_o they_o that_o the_o apostle_n thus_o design_v they_o ye_o young_a be_v subject_a to_o the_o elder_a 3._o the_o obligation_n of_o the_o lord_n people_n to_o their_o duty_n towards_o their_o overseer_n be_v no_o less_o straight_o than_o that_o of_o their_o overseer_n to_o their_o duty_n towards_o they_o and_o therefore_o their_o hazard_n in_o neglect_v their_o duty_n can_v be_v no_o less_o than_o they_o for_o the_o apostle_n bear_v in_o their_o duty_n upon_o they_o towards_o their_o overseer_n by_o such_o a_o word_n as_o import_v a_o equality_n in_o the_o strictness_n of_o the_o tie_n likewise_o you_o young_a be_v subject_a to_o the_o elder_a 4._o there_o be_v a_o mutual_a subjection_n due_a by_o every_o one_o of_o the_o lord_n people_n towards_o another_o which_o consist_v in_o their_o condescendency_n to_o reprove_v one_o another_o in_o love_n for_o their_o fault_n leu._n 19.17_o their_o instruct_n and_o admonish_v one_o another_o concern_v their_o duty_n col._n 3.16_o in_o their_o take_n well_o with_o reproof_n and_o admonition_n one_o from_o another_o psal_n 141.5_o and_o in_o their_o stoop_n to_o all_o the_o duty_n of_o charity_n one_o towards_o another_o gal._n 5._o 13._o and_o the_o like_a all_o which_o be_v comprehend_v in_o this_o second_o direction_n give_v to_o the_o member_n of_o the_o church_n in_o reference_n to_o their_o fellow-member_n yea_o all_o of_o you_o be_v subject_a one_o to_o another_o 5._o however_o man_n appoint_v for_o destruction_n do_v glory_n in_o their_o pride_n and_o violence_n wherewith_o they_o think_v themselves_o adorn_v psal_n 73.6_o 18_o 19_o yet_o the_o grace_n of_o humility_n whereby_o a_o christian_a have_v a_o mean_a esteem_n of_o himself_o flow_v from_o the_o sense_n of_o his_o own_o sinfulness_n 1_o cor._n 15.9_o and_o of_o the_o undeserved_a goodness_n of_o god_n 2_o sam._n 7.18_o 20_o whereby_o he_o be_v incline_v to_o prefer_v other_o to_o himself_o rom._n 12.10_o not_o desire_v more_o esteem_n from_o other_o than_o god_n allow_v he_o to_o have_v 1_o cor._n 3.5_o and_o 4.6_o and_o take_v well_o with_o all_o chastisement_n from_o god_n as_o less_o than_o his_o deserve_n ezr._n 9.13_o be_v the_o prime_a ornament_n of_o christian_n which_o they_o shall_v tie_v about_o they_o and_o delight_n to_o wear_v as_o the_o word_n here_o signify_v and_o be_v no_o less_o ashamed_a to_o appear_v without_o than_o without_o their_o clothing_n be_v clothe_v with_o humility_n 6._o there_o can_v be_v no_o right_a discharge_n of_o any_o duty_n that_o the_o lord_n people_n owe_v to_o superior_n inferior_n or_o equal_n until_o they_o get_v from_o god_n that_o humble_a frame_n of_o spirit_n former_o describe_v for_o this_o exhortation_n may_v be_v take_v for_o a_o mean_a of_o attain_v to_o the_o former_a duty_n and_o be_v clothe_v with_o humility_n 7._o although_o the_o lord_n may_v suffer_v proud_a sinner_n to_o prosper_v in_o their_o sin_n for_o a_o time_n psal_n 73.4_o 5._o yet_o he_o do_v still_o stand_v in_o battle_n array_n as_o the_o word_n here_o translate_v to_o resist_v signify_v against_o they_o and_o will_v take_v his_o fit_a opportunity_n to_o bear_v down_o all_o that_o live_v in_o that_o sin_n of_o pride_n which_o do_v manifest_v itself_o in_o the_o slight_n of_o the_o study_n of_o reconciliation_n with_o god_n through_o christ_n psal_n 10.4_o the_o neglect_n of_o clear_a duty_n press_v by_o the_o word_n neh._n 9.16_o 17_o 29._o and_o in_o unthankfulness_n to_o god_n for_o his_o mercy_n 2_o chron._n 32.25_o 26._o the_o consideration_n of_o which_o opposition_n from_o god_n shall_v make_v the_o study_n of_o humility_n lovely_a and_o pride_n hateful_a to_o the_o lord_n people_n as_o they_o will_v not_o have_v god_n for_o their_o party_n for_o this_o be_v a_o reason_n to_o press_v humility_n god_n resist_v the_o proud_a 8._o the_o sweet_a proof_n of_o god_n favour_n and_o the_o increase_n of_o the_o grace_n of_o his_o spirit_n be_v that_o which_o every_o humble_a sinner_n may_v expect_v which_o shall_v commend_v the_o grace_n of_o humility_n to_o they_o and_o make_v they_o study_v the_o exercise_n of_o it_o for_o both_o these_o be_v comprehend_v in_o this_o second_o argument_n press_v they_o to_o put_v on_o this_o ornament_n god_n give_v grace_n to_o the_o humble_a verse_n 6._o humble_a yourselves_o therefore_o under_o the_o mighty_a hand_n of_o god_n that_o he_o may_v exalt_v you_o in_o due_a time_n the_o apostle_n do_v here_o again_o urge_v his_o former_a exhortation_n to_o the_o study_n of_o humility_n especial_o under_o the_o
cross_n by_o two_o further_a argument_n the_o one_o take_v from_o the_o omnipotency_n of_o god_n which_o be_v able_a to_o crush_v the_o proud_a and_o carry_v the_o humble_a through_o all_o their_o strait_n the_o other_o from_o the_o certain●y_n of_o the_o humble_a person_n deliverance_n which_o be_v promise_v in_o the_o season_n fit_a for_o it_o hence_o learn_v 1._o humility_n be_v a_o lesson_n so_o hard_o to_o be_v learn_v that_o christ_n minister_n have_v need_v to_o press_v the_o same_o frequent_o upon_o his_o people_n and_o study_v many_o argument_n to_o bear_v it_o in_o upon_o they_o for_o the_o apostle_n have_v in_o the_o former_a verse_n by_o very_o strong_a reason_n persuade_v they_o to_o clothe_v themselves_o with_o that_o ornament_n he_o do_v here_o again_o by_o other_o argument_n press_v the_o same_o in_o substance_n humble_v yourselves_o under_o the_o mighty_a hand_n of_o god_n etc._n etc._n 2._o the_o consideration_n of_o the_o mighty_a power_n of_o god_n which_o be_v sufficient_o able_a to_o protect_v and_o bear_v through_o all_o his_o follower_n joh._n 10.28_o and_o to_o find_v out_o and_o punish_v all_o that_o oppose_v he_o or_o they_o psal_n 21.8_o 9_o shall_v move_v the_o lord_n people_n humble_o to_o submit_v to_o their_o duty_n and_o to_o the_o hard_a dispensation_n in_o follow_v thereof_o for_o his_o almighty_a power_n here_o signify_v by_o his_o hand_n be_v mention_v as_o a_o further_a reason_n of_o his_o people_n humble_v of_o themselves_o humble_v yourselves_o therefore_o under_o the_o mighty_a hand_n of_o god_n 3._o although_o the_o lord_n people_n who_o have_v attain_v to_o some_o approven_v measure_n of_o the_o exercise_n of_o this_o grace_n of_o humility_n under_o their_o strait_n may_v not_o expect_v a_o present_a deliverance_n out_o of_o they_o hab._n 2.1_o 3._o yet_o their_o delivery_n be_v make_v sure_a for_o they_o and_o they_o be_v certify_v by_o his_o faithful_a word_n that_o they_o shall_v be_v carry_v through_o till_o they_o meet_v with_o it_o for_o though_o he_o do_v not_o promise_v here_o to_o the_o humble_a that_o they_o shall_v be_v present_o exalt_v yet_o he_o make_v they_o sure_a of_o this_o that_o if_o they_o humble_v themselves_o under_o his_o mighty_a hand_n they_o shall_v be_v exalt_v 4._o the_o deliverance_n of_o the_o lord_n be_v humble_a people_n come_v always_o to_o they_o in_o the_o fit_a time_n which_o be_v when_o the_o lord_n have_v perfect_v his_o work_n intend_v by_o their_o affliction_n isa_n 10.12_o particular_o when_o they_o be_v bring_v to_o that_o measure_n of_o humiliation_n to_o which_o by_o their_o strait_n the_o lord_n intend_v to_o bring_v they_o leu._n 26.41_o when_o they_o be_v prepare_v by_o their_o strait_n to_o put_v a_o due_a price_n upon_o a_o delivery_n psal_n 102.13_o 14._o and_o when_o the_o cup_n of_o their_o enemy_n iniquity_n be_v full_a gen._n 15.16_o for_o this_o word_n signify_v both_o the_o opportunity_n fix_v and_o fit_a for_o the_o exaltation_n of_o the_o humble_a he_o shall_v exalt_v you_o in_o due_a time_n verse_n 7._o cast_v all_o your_o care_n upon_o he_o for_o he_o care_v for_o you_o the_o four_o direction_n which_o be_v bring_v in_o as_o a_o special_a mean_n of_o attain_v to_o the_o former_a be_v that_o believer_n shall_v by_o faith_n commit_v unto_o the_o lord_n their_o thorow-bearing_a in_o their_o duty_n the_o event_n thereof_o and_o all_o their_o anxiety_n about_o these_o and_o that_o because_o the_o lord_n love_a providence_n do_v not_o suffer_v he_o to_o neglect_v they_o or_o any_o of_o their_o concernment_n hence_o learn_v 1._o the_o child_n of_o the_o lord_n be_v subject_a to_o much_o sinful_a anxiety_n in_o follow_v of_o their_o duty_n which_o appear_v when_o they_o be_v hinder_v from_o their_o duty_n by_o look_v more_o to_o their_o own_o weakness_n and_o the_o difficulty_n in_o the_o way_n of_o duty_n than_o to_o the_o sufficiency_n promise_v by_o he_o that_o call_v they_o to_o it_o exod._n 3.11_o or_o when_o they_o be_v discourage_v in_o their_o duty_n by_o the_o apprehension_n of_o probable_a hazard_n in_o the_o way_n of_o it_o isa_n 51.12_o 13._o of_o which_o evil_a the_o spirit_n of_o the_o lord_n will_v have_v they_o sensible_a while_o he_o find_v it_o necessary_a thus_o to_o exhort_v they_o cast_v all_o your_o care_n on_o he_o 2._o although_o it_o be_v most_o commendable_a in_o christian_n to_o entertain_v such_o a_o care_n of_o discharge_v their_o duty_n aright_o and_o of_o eschew_v what_o may_v provoke_v the_o lord_n in_o their_o way_n of_o go_v about_o it_o as_o stir_v they_o up_o to_o much_o diligence_n and_o employ_v of_o jesus_n christ_n 2_o cor._n 7.11_o yet_o such_o a_o care_n whether_o anent_o the_o manner_n of_o their_o go_v about_o their_o duty_n or_o the_o success_n and_o event_n thereof_o as_o do_v distract_v their_o heart_n in_o duty_n and_o indispose_v they_o for_o it_o be_v sinful_a and_o to_o be_v shake_v off_o by_o all_o that_o will_v discharge_v their_o duty_n acceptable_o for_o so_o do_v the_o apostle_n here_o direct_v cast_v all_o your_o care_n upon_o he_o 3._o the_o way_n to_o be_v liberate_v of_o anxiety_n and_o heart-dividing_a care_n which_o indispose_v for_o duty_n be_v by_o prayer_n to_o commend_v the_o success_n and_o event_n of_o our_o duty_n and_o our_o thorow-bearing_a therein_o to_o the_o lord_n philip._n 4.6_o and_o by_o faith_n to_o commit_v both_o to_o he_o prov._n 16.3_o for_o this_o be_v here_o the_o direction_n of_o the_o spirit_n of_o the_o lord_n for_o attain_v to_o freedom_n from_o sinful_a anxiety_n cast_v all_o your_o care_n upon_o he_o 4._o the_o lord_n allow_v his_o child_n to_o cast_v upon_o he_o all_o their_o anxiety_n both_o such_o as_o they_o have_v about_o their_o soul_n and_o matter_n of_o high_a concernment_n and_o those_o about_o their_o body_n and_o lesser_a matter_n how_o small_a soever_o the_o thing_n be_v where-about_a their_o heart_n become_v anxious_a he_o allow_v they_o to_o commit_v the_o same_o to_o he_o for_o he_o know_v that_o a_o very_a small_a matter_n be_v ready_a to_o occasion_v much_o vexation_n of_o spirit_n to_o his_o own_o jona_n 4.8_o therefore_o do_v he_o thus_o direct_v they_o to_o cast_v all_o their_o care_n upon_o he_o 5._o it_o be_v not_o only_o the_o privilege_n of_o believer_n that_o they_o may_v disburden_v themselves_o of_o their_o distrustful_a heart-dividing_a care_n by_o cast_v they_o over_o upon_o the_o lord_n but_o it_o be_v also_o the_o very_a great_a desire_n of_o our_o god_n that_o we_o shall_v not_o sink_v under_o the_o insupportable_a burden_n of_o our_o own_o needless_a care_n and_o fear_n yea_o it_o be_v his_o peremptory_a command_n to_o put_v these_o off_o ourselves_o upon_o he_o which_o his_o people_n may_v not_o disobey_v except_o they_o will_v incur_v his_o displeasure_n and_o destroy_v themselves_o for_o this_o have_v the_o force_n of_o a_o command_n cast_v all_o your_o care_n upon_o he_o 6._o as_o no_o duty_n can_v be_v right_o discharge_v by_o we_o while_o the_o lord_n be_v not_o trust_v with_o our_o thorow-bearing_a in_o it_o and_o with_o the_o event_n and_o success_n thereof_o or_o while_o the_o heart_n be_v distract_v with_o misbelieve_a anxiety_n about_o these_o so_o the_o trust_n of_o god_n with_o these_o be_v the_o best_a way_n to_o come_v speed_n in_o every_o duty_n for_o the_o apostle_n have_v exhort_v before_o to_o duty_n towards_o their_o overseer_n to_o one_o another_o and_o to_o god_n he_o bring_v in_o this_o as_o a_o mean_a of_o attain_v to_o all_o these_o without_o which_o none_o of_o they_o can_v be_v attain_v unto_o cast_v all_o your_o care_n upon_o he_o 7._o misbelieve_v anxiety_n whereby_o christian_n break_v themselves_o with_o the_o burden_n of_o these_o care_n which_o god_n require_v to_o be_v cast_v upon_o he_o be_v one_o of_o the_o great_a sign_n of_o pride_n in_o the_o world_n and_o to_o trust_v god_n with_o the_o weight_n of_o these_o in_o follow_v our_o duty_n be_v a_o prime_a evidence_n of_o true_a humility_n for_o this_o be_v bring_v in_o as_o a_o special_a way_n how_o they_o shall_v prove_v themselves_o to_o be_v humble_v under_o god_n mighty_a hand_n and_o as_o that_o without_o which_o they_o can_v not_o but_o declare_v their_o pride_n as_o both_o the_o construction_n of_o the_o word_n and_o their_o connexion_n with_o the_o former_a do_v import_n humble_v yourselves_o etc._n etc._n cast_v all_o your_o care_n upon_o he_o 8._o although_o the_o lord_n be_v altogether_o free_a of_o such_o passion_n as_o care_n sorrow_n and_o the_o like_a which_o be_v in_o man_n numb_a 23.19_o yet_o those_o of_o his_o people_n that_o cast_v their_o care_n upon_o he_o shall_v find_v no_o less_o proof_n of_o his_o love_n both_o in_o ward_n off_o hazard_n so_o far_o as_o be_v necessary_a and_o provide_v every_o thing_n needful_a for_o
to_o deliver_v the_o godly_a out_o of_o temptation_n 2._o it_o be_v the_o lot_n of_o the_o true_o godly_a to_o be_v bring_v into_o many_o and_o great_a strait_n not_o only_o by_o outward_a trouble_n but_o by_o inward_a temptation_n both_o which_o come_v ordinary_o together_o upon_o the_o child_n of_o the_o lord_n that_o so_o their_o manifold_a corruption_n may_v be_v bear_v down_o the_o several_a grace_n of_o god_n spirit_n in_o they_o may_v be_v try_v and_o increase_v by_o exercise_n and_o the_o power_n faithfulness_n and_o love_n of_o christ_n manifest_v and_o commend_v in_o their_o thorow-bearing_a and_o deliverance_n for_o they_o from_o who_o case_n this_o inference_n be_v draw_v be_v in_o both_o these_o exercise_n at_o once_o and_o the_o word_n temptation_n here_o do_v ordinary_o in_o scripture_n signify_v both_o affliction_n and_o temptation_n to_o sin_n 3._o while_o the_o child_n of_o the_o lord_n be_v exercise_v with_o outward_a affliction_n and_o inward_a temptation_n they_o be_v also_o oftentimes_o both_o ignorant_a of_o a_o way_n of_o delivery_n and_o anxious_a concern_v it_o as_o if_o their_o strait_n and_o the_o way_n of_o their_o out-gate_n be_v hide_v from_o the_o lord_n as_o it_o be_v isa_n 40.27_o for_o this_o consolation_n the_o lord_n know_v how_o to_o deliver_v the_o godly_a be_v fit_v for_o such_o a_o case_n and_o so_o do_v suppose_v it_o to_o be_v ordinary_a 4._o the_o lord_n be_v take_v notice_n of_o the_o strait_n of_o the_o godly_a and_o his_o knowledge_n of_o the_o way_n of_o their_o deliverance_n shall_v be_v to_o they_o a_o sufficient_a ground_n of_o comfort_n both_o against_o their_o strait_n and_o their_o ignorance_n of_o a_o way_n of_o out-gate_n his_o love_n have_v engage_v his_o power_n and_o faithfulness_n to_o make_v forthcoming_a for_o they_o every_o thing_n his_o infinite_a wisdom_n see_v to_o be_v most_o for_o their_o good_a for_o for_o this_o very_a end_n be_v this_o consolation_n give_v to_o the_o godly_a the_o lord_n know_v how_o to_o deliver_v they_o out_o of_o temptation_n that_o they_o may_v be_v comfort_v both_o against_o their_o strait_n and_o their_o ignorance_n of_o a_o way_n of_o delivery_n 5._o whether_o the_o lord_n spare_v wicked_a man_n or_o let_v out_o the_o earnest_n of_o his_o wrath_n upon_o they_o in_o this_o life_n yet_o be_v the_o fu_n l_o measure_n thereof_o keep_v to_o the_o fore_n for_o they_o against_o the_o day_n of_o judgement_n when_o they_o shall_v be_v make_v able_a to_o endure_v that_o wrath_n a_o sparkle_n whereof_o will_v now_o undo_v they_o therefore_o for_o their_o terror_n be_v this_o conclusion_n also_o draw_v from_o the_o former_a example_n the_o lord_n know_v how_o to_o reserve_v the_o unjust_a to_o the_o day_n of_o judgement_n to_o be_v punish_v verse_n 10._o but_o chief_o they_o that_o walk_v after_o the_o flesh_n in_o the_o last_o of_o uncleanness_n and_o despise_v government_n presumptuous_a be_v they_o self-willed_a they_o be_v not_o afraid_a to_o speak_v evil_a of_o dignity_n the_o former_a threaten_n and_o example_n of_o god_n judgement_n which_o do_v concern_v all_o ungodly_a man_n be_v here_o particular_o apply_v to_o some_o who_o do_v in_o a_o special_a manner_n incense_v the_o wrath_n of_o god_n against_o themselves_o among_o who_o false_a teacher_n and_o their_o follower_n be_v main_o eye_v and_o who_o be_v describe_v from_o this_o that_o they_o follow_v their_o unmortified_a corruption_n as_o their_o ordinary_a leader_n make_v a_o trade_n of_o sin_n against_o the_o second_o table_n particular_o the_o seven_o and_o five_o commandment_n thereof_o wherein_o they_o be_v so_o bold_a and_o self-pleasing_a that_o they_o do_v not_o fear_v open_o to_o disgrace_v any_o lawful_a authority_n that_o may_v oppose_v they_o in_o their_o wickedness_n hence_o learn_v 1._o whatever_o be_v the_o fair_a pretence_n of_o singular_a holiness_n that_o false_a teacher_n use_v to_o have_v 2_o cor._n 11.13_o yet_o real_o and_o in_o effect_n they_o be_v nothing_o else_o but_o profane_a slave_n to_o their_o lust_n in_o so_o far_o as_o truth_n be_v forsake_v and_o error_n receive_v profanity_n must_v needs_o have_v place_n and_o holiness_n be_v forsake_v the_o same_o spirit_n of_o christ_n be_v the_o spirit_n of_o truth_n and_o the_o spirit_n of_o holiness_n for_o these_o seducer_n who_o draw_v so_o many_o after_o they_o by_o their_o fair_a pretence_n be_v main_o intend_v here_o while_o the_o apostle_n say_v they_o walk_v after_o the_o flesh_n in_o the_o lust_n of_o uncleanness_n 2._o although_o any_o one_o act_n of_o sin_n yea_o the_o least_o sinful_a motion_n of_o the_o heart_n do_v deserve_v god_n everlasting_a wrath_n rom._n 6.33_o yet_o there_o be_v a_o singular_a measure_n of_o wrath_n abide_v some_o sinner_n beyond_o other_o particular_o those_o who_o be_v not_o only_o through_o infirmity_n overtake_v in_o sin_n as_o the_o best_a of_o the_o saint_n have_v be_v but_o do_v also_o make_v their_o corrupt_a inclination_n their_o ordinary_a guide_n and_o rule_v and_o their_o follow_v and_o satisfy_v thereof_o their_o common_a trade_n for_o the_o threaten_a former_o give_v out_o against_o all_o the_o ungodly_a be_v here_o particular_o apply_v to_o some_o chief_o those_o that_o walk_v after_o the_o flesh_n 3._o the_o wrath_n of_o a_o holy_a god_n be_v in_o a_o special_a way_n incense_v against_o the_o sin_n of_o uncleanness_n and_o that_o not_o only_o against_o the_o outward_a act_n of_o that_o sin_n such_o as_o fornication_n adultery_n etc._n etc._n but_o against_o the_o very_a inward_a motion_n of_o the_o heart_n towards_o it_o for_o there_o be_v a_o special_a measure_n of_o wrath_n here_o denounce_v against_o they_o who_o walk_v in_o the_o lust_n or_o as_o the_o word_n signify_v the_o desire_n of_o uncleanness_n 4._o lawful_a magistracy_n be_v a_o divine_a ordinance_n so_o precious_a in_o god_n account_n that_o he_o will_v let_v out_o a_o special_a measure_n of_o his_o wrath_n upon_o man_n for_o want_v of_o inward_a respect_n to_o it_o in_o their_o heart_n yea_o for_o any_o expression_n that_o may_v weaken_v the_o due_a esteem_n thereof_o in_o the_o heart_n of_o other_o even_o though_o they_o be_v heathen_n that_o be_v invest_v with_o that_o office_n for_o though_o magistrate_n be_v general_o such_o at_o this_o time_n yet_o there_o be_v a_o special_a degree_n of_o wrath_n threaten_v against_o they_o who_o either_o undervalue_n in_o their_o heart_n or_o disgrace_n by_o their_o expression_n that_o ordinance_n especial_o those_o who_o despise_v government_n and_o be_v not_o afraid_a to_o speak_v evil_a of_o dignity_n 5._o man_n that_o be_v slave_n to_o their_o own_o lust_n be_v ordinary_o unfriend_n to_o lawful_a magistrate_n pretend_v what_o they_o will_v they_o who_o live_v in_o rebellion_n against_o god_n can_v never_o be_v true_o loyal_a to_o any_o vicegerent_n of_o his_o and_o therefore_o ought_v not_o to_o be_v prefer_v or_o countenance_v by_o such_o or_o any_o that_o give_v our_o themselves_o to_o be_v such_o for_o they_o that_o walk_v after_o the_o flesh_n do_v also_o despise_v government_n 6._o the_o more_o stouthearted_a man_n be_v in_o their_o sinful_a course_n outface_v all_o challenge_n and_o the_o more_o wed_v to_o their_o own_o inclination_n not_o fear_v to_o disgrace_v any_o that_o have_v a_o calling_n to_o oppose_v they_o in_o their_o wickedness_n the_o more_o wrath_n have_v they_o to_o expect_v from_o god_n for_o thus_o be_v the_o sin_n of_o these_o man_n aggrege_v who_o be_v here_o threaten_v with_o a_o special_a measure_n of_o wrath_n presumptuous_a be_v they_o self-willed_a 7._o although_o sedition_n and_o disloyalty_n to_o lawful_a magistracy_n be_v the_o ordinary_a charge_n which_o false_a teacher_n give_v in_o against_o he_o faithful_a servant_n of_o christ_n act._n 24.1_o 5._o and_o 17.6_o 7._o as_o they_o do_v also_o against_o the_o lord_n himself_o luke_n 23.1_o 2._o yet_o these_o false_a teacher_n themselves_o will_v be_v find_v to_o be_v the_o great_a unfriend_n of_o lawful_a magistrate_n either_o deny_v or_o weaken_v their_o authority_n if_o so_o be_v they_o employ_v their_o power_n any_o way_n for_o oppose_v their_o error_n or_o wicked_a practice_n for_o false_a teacher_n be_v main_o intend_v here_o and_o charge_v by_o the_o spirit_n of_o the_o lord_n with_o this_o guilt_n they_o despise_v government_n and_o be_v not_o afraid_a to_o speak_v evil_a of_o dignity_n verse_n 11._o whereas_o angel_n which_o be_v great_a in_o power_n and_o might_n bring_v not_o rail_v accusation_n against_o they_o before_o the_o lord_n the_o apostle_n do_v aggrege_n their_o sin_n of_o despise_v and_o disgrace_v lawful_a authority_n from_o the_o carriage_n of_o the_o good_a angel_n who_o though_o they_o be_v far_o above_o the_o great_a on_o earth_n in_o power_n and_o other_o perfection_n yet_o do_v they_o esteem_v so_o high_o of_o magistracy_n that_o they_o be_v loath_a to_o do_v any_o thing_n that_o
describe_v these_o man_n here_o as_o slave_n to_o all_o these_o three_o idol_n at_o once_o to_o their_o pleasure_n which_o be_v their_o eden_n to_o their_o credit_n which_o make_v they_o hold_v forth_o bait_v to_o take_v many_o follower_n and_o to_o their_o gain_n wherewith_o their_o heart_n be_v exercise_v that_o so_o their_o pleasure_n and_o credit_n may_v be_v attain_v and_o uphold_v last_o they_o who_o profess_v themselves_o to_o be_v the_o child_n of_o the_o lord_n do_v spend_v their_o immortal_a spirit_n upon_o the_o unworthy_a thing_n of_o this_o present_a life_n not_o trust_v to_o his_o care_n and_o providence_n in_o the_o moderate_a use_n of_o lawful_a mean_n whereunto_o their_o profession_n do_v oblige_v they_o they_o do_v forfeit_v their_o right_n they_o pretend_v to_o have_v to_o the_o privilege_n of_o his_o child_n and_o serve_v themselves_o heir_n to_o his_o curse_n for_o because_o their_o heart_n be_v exercise_v with_o covetous_a practice_n they_o be_v curse_v child_n verse_n 15._o which_o have_v forsake_v the_o right_a way_n and_o be_v go_v astray_o follow_v the_o way_n of_o balaam_n the_o son_n of_o bosor_n who_o love_v the_o wage_n of_o unrighteousness_n 16._o but_o be_v rebuke_v for_o his_o iniquity_n the_o dumb_a ass_n speak_v with_o man_n voice_n forbid_v the_o madness_n of_o the_o prophet_n the_o apostle_n have_v show_v what_o idol_n these_o false_a teacher_n do_v set_v up_o he_o show_v here_o two_o woeful_a effect_n that_o their_o love_n to_o they_o especial_o to_o their_o gain_n have_v upon_o they_o the_o first_o be_v their_o apostasy_n from_o the_o truth_n and_o way_n of_o christ_n the_o second_o be_v extreme_a violence_n in_o the_o prosecution_n of_o these_o idol_n which_o last_o he_o set_v forth_o by_o compare_v they_o with_o b●laam_n who_o be_v so_o mad_a in_o the_o prosecution_n of_o these_o same_o idol_n that_o even_o extraordinary_a opposition_n can_v not_o restrain_v he_o hence_o learn_v 1._o however_o man_n that_o real_o enter_v the_o way_n of_o christ_n can_v never_o total_o or_o final_o fall_v from_o it_o by_o reason_n of_o the_o lord_n be_v undertake_v joh._n 10.28_o and_o unchangeableness_n rom._n 11.29_o yet_o they_o who_o have_v be_v once_o in_o opinion_n sound_n and_o in_o external_a practice_n blameless_a remain_v in_o the_o mean_a time_n without_o any_o inward_a save_a change_n may_v make_v apostasy_n from_o both_o for_o such_o have_v these_o man_n be_v of_o who_o the_o apostle_n say_v they_o have_v forsake_v the_o right_a way_n 2._o love_n to_o some_o unmortified_a lust_n especial_o covetousness_n be_v the_o prime_a cause_n both_o of_o much_o apostasy_n and_o of_o extreme_a violence_n in_o sinful_a course_n for_o so_o be_v it_o with_o these_o false_a teacher_n and_o their_o follower_n their_o heart_n be_v exercise_v with_o covetous_a practice_n in_o the_o former_a verse_n and_o therefore_o they_o forsake_v the_o right_a way_n imitate_v balaam_n in_o the_o violent_a prosecution_n of_o that_o idol_n 3._o when_o the_o right_a way_n which_o be_v the_o way_n of_o truth_n and_o holiness_n be_v forsake_v man_n can_v keep_v no_o certain_a course_n but_o must_v needs_o be_v like_o wander_a star_n or_o planet_n as_o the_o word_n here_o signify_v ever_o seek_v and_o never_o find_v that_o true_a satisfaction_n they_o may_v have_v have_v and_o have_v forsake_v by_o forsake_v the_o right_a way_n and_o be_v go_v astray_o 4._o when_o the_o lord_n be_v ordinary_a mean_n to_o reclaim_v sinner_n from_o their_o lust_n do_v not_o prevail_v with_o they_o the_o lord_n be_v just_o provoke_v to_o give_v they_o up_o to_o go_v on_o in_o their_o own_o way_n over_o the_o belly_n of_o more_o than_o ordinary_a opposition_n if_o they_o have_v it_o till_o they_o perish_v for_o balaam_n be_v not_o restrain_v by_o mean_n more_o ordinary_a in_o his_o time_n and_o therefore_o he_o be_v not_o reclaim_v by_o mean_n more_o extraordinary_a he_o love_v the_o wage_n of_o unrighteousness_n though_o he_o be_v rebuke_v for_o his_o iniquity_n by_o the_o dumb_a ass_n 5._o covetousness_n be_v once_o root_v in_o the_o heart_n and_o propose_v as_o a_o man_n main_a end_n it_o be_v so_o powerful_a and_o imperious_a a_o idol_n that_o it_o will_v make_v the_o covetous_a man_n adventure_n upon_o any_o course_n though_o never_o so_o unrighteous_a and_o go_v over_o never_o so_o much_o opposition_n in_o the_o way_n of_o his_o gain_n for_o though_o the_o wage_n that_o balaam_n desire_v be_v wage_n of_o unrighteousness_n because_o they_o can_v not_o be_v have_v but_o by_o curse_v the_o people_n who_o god_n have_v blessed_v yet_o he_o love_v they_o and_o pursue_v they_o though_o the_o dumb_a ass_n forbid_v his_o madness_n in_o so_o do_v 6._o the_o more_o opposition_n from_o the_o word_n or_o dispensation_n of_o god_n man_n do_v go_v over_o in_o the_o prosecution_n of_o their_o lust_n the_o great_a be_v their_o guilt_n and_o the_o more_o wrath_n have_v they_o to_o expect_v from_o god_n especial_o when_o they_o trace_v the_o step_n of_o sinner_n who_o god_n have_v by_o his_o word_n and_o providence_n oppose_v before_o they_o for_o it_o be_v here_o make_v a_o aggravation_n of_o sin_n and_o cause_n of_o a_o special_a measure_n of_o wrath_n that_o these_o man_n follow_v the_o way_n of_o balaam_n who_o will_v go_v on_o after_o his_o lust_n though_o the_o dumb_a ass_n speak_v with_o man_n voice_n forbid_v his_o madness_n 7._o it_o be_v in_o some_o respect_n more_o easy_a to_o work_v the_o great_a miracle_n in_o nature_n than_o to_o stop_v the_o course_n of_o a_o sinner_n violent_o pursue_v his_o lust_n the_o reasonless_a creature_n who_o have_v no_o active_a opposition_n in_o they_o to_o their_o maker_n will_n be_v more_o prone_a to_o obey_v he_o contrary_a to_o their_o ordinary_a course_n than_o reasonable_a creature_n without_o special_a grace_n and_o assistance_n can_v be_v either_o to_o follow_v the_o direction_n of_o his_o word_n or_o their_o own_o reason_n contrary_a to_o their_o corrupt_a and_o vile_a affection_n for_o while_o balaam_n go_v on_o in_o his_o sinful_a course_n the_o dumb_a ass_n speak_v as_o if_o it_o have_v a_o man_n voice_n forbid_v his_o madness_n 8._o a_o cross_a providence_n meet_v sinner_n in_o a_o course_n contrary_n to_o the_o reveal_v will_n of_o the_o lord_n have_v a_o language_n to_o they_o proclaim_v their_o madness_n and_o prohibit_v they_o to_o go_v on_o in_o their_o sin_n which_o they_o ought_v to_o hear_v and_o obey_v although_o it_o be_v not_o so_o express_v as_o when_o one_o man_n reprove_v another_o see_v mica_n 6.9_o for_o though_o we_o read_v not_o numb_a 22._o that_o balaam_n ass_n do_v either_o express_o call_v he_o mad_a or_o prohibit_v his_o course_n yet_o here_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n put_v that_o commentary_n upon_o what_o it_o speak_v which_o also_o balaam_n shall_v have_v do_v that_o the_o dumb_a ass_n speak_v with_o man_n voice_n forbid_v the_o madness_n of_o the_o prophet_n 9_o it_o be_v the_o height_n of_o madness_n to_o walk_v contrary_a to_o the_o reveal_v will_n of_o god_n how_o much_o use_n of_o reason_n soever_o man_n may_v have_v to_o cover_v their_o wickedness_n and_o attain_v to_o their_o idol_n for_o though_o much_o carnal_a reason_n and_o policy_n do_v appear_v in_o balaam_n way_n yet_o the_o dumb_a ass_n forbid_v the_o madness_n of_o the_o prophet_n 10._o a_o man_n who_o be_v mad_a in_o the_o pursuit_n of_o his_o lust_n and_o so_o incorrigible_a that_o even_o extraordinary_a mean_n do_v not_o reclaim_v he_o may_v notwithstanding_o be_v employ_v by_o the_o lord_n for_o reveal_v of_o his_o will_n to_o his_o people_n and_o for_o the_o edify_n of_o his_o church_n and_o in_o the_o discharge_n of_o that_o employment_n may_v be_v furnish_v with_o much_o heavenly_a matter_n and_o suitable_a expression_n and_o aught_o to_o be_v hear_v and_o obey_v by_o the_o church_n in_o the_o discharge_n of_o his_o employment_n while_o he_o be_v not_o discover_v to_o be_v what_o he_o be_v and_o be_v not_o according_a to_o the_o order_n establish_v in_o the_o house_n of_o god_n put_v from_o that_o employment_n for_o such_o a_o man_n be_v balaam_n who_o the_o lord_n do_v employ_v and_o by_o who_o he_o do_v deliver_v most_o comfortable_a and_o edify_a truth_n to_o his_o church_n all_o which_o be_v clear_a by_o compare_v this_o place_n of_o scripture_n with_o numb_a 21,22_o chapter_n verse_n 17._o these_o be_v well_n without_o water_n cloud_n that_o be_v carry_v with_o a_o tempest_n to_o who_o the_o mist_n of_o darkness_n be_v reserve_v for_o ever_o in_o this_o and_o the_o two_o follow_a verse_n the_o apostle_n hold_v forth_o several_a of_o those_o mean_n which_o false_a teacher_n make_v use_v of_o for_o attain_v their_o forename_a idol_n especial_o their_o gain_n and_o applause_n the_o first_o which_o be_v in_o this_o vers_fw-la be_v their_o fair_a
promise_n of_o do_v much_o good_a to_o the_o church_n they_o give_v out_o themselves_o to_o be_v welspring_n of_o comfort_n to_o the_o lord_n people_n and_o cloud_n to_o drop_v down_o their_o doctrine_n as_o rain_v to_o make_v the_o church_n fruitful_a whileas_o in_o effect_n they_o do_v but_o disappoint_v poor_a soul_n and_o darken_v the_o truth_n for_o which_o the_o apostle_n threaten_v they_o with_o everlasting_a darkness_n as_o their_o portion_n hence_o learn_v 1._o they_o that_o do_v most_o hurt_v to_o the_o soul_n of_o the_o lord_n people_n by_o vent_v most_o dangerous_a error_n among_o they_o make_v oftentimes_o the_o fair_a promise_n of_o do_v most_o good_a to_o they_o that_o so_o they_o may_v feed_v people_n with_o vain_a expectation_n of_o more_o than_o ever_o they_o can_v find_v from_o they_o faithful_a minister_n be_v sensible_a of_o their_o own_o insufficiency_n 2_o cor._n 3.5_o and_o of_o the_o necessity_n of_o a_o divine_a concurrence_n with_o their_o pain_n 1_o cor._n 3.7_o be_v more_o ready_a to_o express_v their_o fear_n of_o people_n disappointment_n 2_o cor._n 11.2_o 3._o than_o to_o make_v such_o large_a promise_n of_o much_o comfort_n and_o profit_n to_o people_n by_o their_o mean_n as_o false_a teacher_n use_v to_o do_v for_o here_o these_o seducer_n give_v out_o themselves_o to_o be_v what_o faithful_a minister_n ought_v to_o be_v wells_n of_o consolation_n receive_v from_o christ_n the_o fountain_n and_o give_v out_o to_o his_o people_n what_o may_v comfort_v they_o and_o cloud_n to_o drop_v down_o their_o doctrine_n as_o rain_v in_o season_n to_o make_v they_o fruitful_a 2._o whatever_o be_v the_o fair_a pretence_n and_o promise_n of_o false_a teacher_n the_o lord_n people_n can_v meet_v with_o nothing_o but_o disappointment_n from_o they_o and_o whatever_o esteem_n they_o may_v have_v among_o the_o best_a for_o a_o time_n god_n will_v take_v his_o own_o time_n to_o manifest_v what_o they_o be_v in_o effect_n and_o to_o undeceive_v his_o own_o people_n for_o here_o they_o that_o give_v out_o themselves_o and_o be_v esteem_v to_o be_v the_o chief_a instrument_n of_o the_o comfort_n and_o fruitfulness_n of_o the_o church_n as_o the_o similitude_n of_o well_n and_o cloud_n whereby_o they_o set_v out_o themselves_o do_v import_n be_v here_o discover_v to_o be_v such_o as_o do_v disappoint_v and_o in_o disappoint_v increase_v the_o anxiety_n of_o these_o that_o expect_a comfort_n from_o they_o as_o well_n without_o water_n do_v the_o weary_a traveler_n and_o to_o be_v such_o as_o be_v act_v by_o the_o restless_a spirit_n of_o satan_n into_o every_o airth_n where_o their_o forenamed_a idol_n of_o gain_n and_o applause_n can_v be_v have_v as_o cloud_n that_o be_v carry_v with_o a_o tempest_n 3._o the_o judgement_n of_o false_a teacher_n whereof_o their_o follower_n shall_v get_v a_o share_n shall_v be_v very_o proportionable_a to_o their_o sin_n for_o they_o promise_v to_o be_v well_n of_o consolation_n to_o the_o lord_n people_n and_o do_v disappoint_v they_o they_o themselves_o delight_v to_o walk_v and_o to_o lead_v other_o in_o the_o work_n of_o darkness_n they_o darken_v the_o truth_n of_o god_n and_o in_o this_o course_n they_o be_v restless_a as_o cloud_n carry_v with_o a_o tempest_n and_o therefore_o the_o threaten_a be_v exact_o suit_v to_o these_o sin_n for_o they_o the_o mist_n of_o darkness_n be_v reserve_v for_o ever_o verse_n 18._o for_o when_o they_o speak_v great_a swell_a word_n of_o vanity_n they_o allure_v through_o the_o lust_n of_o the_o flesh_n through_o much_o wantonness_n those_o that_o be_v clean_o escape_v from_o they_o who_o live_v in_o error_n here_o be_v the_o next_o course_n which_o soul-deceiver_n take_v to_o ensnare_v poor_a soul_n by_o their_o error_n to_o wit_n a_o high_a and_o lofty_a stile_n of_o language_n which_o their_o love_n to_o their_o lust_n make_v they_o to_o affect_v and_o whereby_o they_o be_v very_o take_v with_o unmortified_a wanton_a professor_n especial_o such_o as_o have_v be_v turn_v from_o paganism_n to_o the_o profession_n of_o christianity_n hence_o learn_v 1._o they_o that_o vent_v error_n do_v ordinary_o hold_v it_o forth_o under_o some_o lofty_a strain_n of_o language_n and_o high-bended_a expression_n beyond_o what_o be_v ordinary_a such_o as_o may_v be_v most_o take_v with_o and_o admire_v by_o the_o hearer_n whileas_o faithful_a minister_n can_v trust_v christ_n to_o make_v plain_a truth_n speak_v in_o the_o simplicity_n of_o word_n effectual_a for_o the_o salvation_n comfort_n and_o edification_n of_o his_o own_o which_o be_v their_o main_a scope_n 1_o cor._n 2.4_o for_o it_o be_v here_o a_o character_n of_o false_a teacher_n they_o speak_v great_a swell_a word_n 2._o when_o the_o vail_n of_o odd_a and_o soar_a expression_n wherein_o false_a teacher_n delight_n be_v lay_v aside_o and_o the_o naked_a purpose_n hold_v forth_o under_o they_o be_v consider_v it_o will_v be_v find_v of_o no_o worth_n but_o either_o some_o untruth_n or_o that_o which_o make_v nothing_o to_o the_o true_a advantage_n of_o soul_n both_o which_o be_v vanity_n for_o here_o their_o great_a swell_a word_n be_v word_n of_o vanity_n 3._o a_o affect_a lofty_a stile_n of_o language_n in_o utter_v thing_n divine_a do_v ordinary_o flow_v from_o some_o unmortified_a lust_n in_o the_o speaker_n especial_o the_o love_n of_o applause_n and_o be_v also_o main_o take_v with_o wanton_a unhumbled_a soul_n when_o it_o do_v provoke_v to_o more_o vanity_n and_o lightness_n by_o divert_v they_o from_o the_o study_n of_o their_o natural_a vileness_n their_o need_n of_o jesus_n and_o the_o necessity_n of_o the_o mortification_n of_o their_o heart-evils_a for_o they_o who_o speak_v great_a swell_a word_n of_o vanity_n they_o allure_v through_o the_o lust_n of_o the_o flesh_n through_o much_o wantonness_n both_o which_o last_o clause_n may_v be_v understand_v as_o well_o of_o the_o principle_n which_o do_v bend_v the_o preacher_n to_o that_o strain_n as_o of_o the_o qualification_n of_o these_o hearer_n with_o who_o it_o be_v most_o take_v 4._o there_o may_v be_v a_o very_a remarkable_a external_a change_n from_o vile_a and_o blasphemous_a opinion_n idolatrous_a and_o profane_a practice_n to_o a_o profession_n of_o truth_n and_o suitablenesse_n of_o the_o outward_a conversation_n to_o it_o where_o there_o be_v no_o save_v or_o inward_a change_n make_v of_o the_o heart_n from_o the_o love_n of_o secret_a lust_n to_o the_o love_n of_o christ_n and_o his_o grace_n the_o one_o without_o the_o other_o may_v be_v occasion_v by_o the_o power_n of_o example_n the_o majesty_n and_o clearness_n of_o truth_n which_o be_v in_o nothing_o contrary_a to_o nature_n light_n the_o beauty_n of_o holiness_n shine_v in_o the_o conversation_n of_o professor_n and_o outward_a advantage_n which_o sometime_o may_v attend_v the_o profession_n of_o truth_n and_o holiness_n for_o these_o here_o who_o be_v yet_o give_v to_o the_o lust_n of_o their_o flesh_n and_o much_o wantonness_n have_v once_o clean_o escape_v from_o the_o blasphemous_a opinion_n profane_a and_o idolatrous_a practice_n of_o those_o without_o the_o church_n who_o be_v here_o call_v they_o that_o live_v in_o error_n 5._o whatever_o change_n of_o this_o sort_n be_v wrought_v upon_o man_n unless_o they_o labour_v to_o find_v the_o power_n of_o christ_n spirit_n change_v their_o nature_n and_o mortify_v their_o inward_a lust_n they_o will_v easy_o be_v a_o prey_n to_o seduce_a spirit_n and_o carry_v to_o those_o sin_n which_o be_v no_o less_o dishonourable_a to_o god_n and_o destructive_a to_o their_o own_o soul_n than_o those_o wherein_o they_o live_v before_o for_o here_o those_o who_o have_v once_o clean_o escape_v from_o the_o vile_a opinion_n and_o wicked_a practice_n wherein_o pagan_n live_v be_v now_o by_o the_o seduction_n of_o false_a teacher_n turn_v profane_a and_o licentious_a christian_n verse_n 19_o while_o they_o promise_v they_o liberty_n they_o themselves_o be_v the_o servant_n of_o corruption_n for_o of_o who_o a_o man_n be_v overcome_v of_o the_o same_o be_v he_o bring_v in_o bondage_n the_o last_o of_o those_o mean_n whereby_o false_a teacher_n do_v ensnare_v so_o many_o of_o their_o hearer_n be_v their_o pretend_v to_o make_v clear_a to_o they_o and_o possess_v they_o in_o that_o christian_a liberty_n whereof_o the_o gospel_n speak_v which_o they_o can_v not_o at_o all_o perform_v in_o regard_n themselves_o be_v complete_a slave_n to_o their_o lust_n as_o captive_n in_o war_n be_v servant_n to_o their_o conqueror_n hence_o learn_v 1._o the_o doctrine_n of_o christian_a liberty_n which_o be_v in_o itself_o most_o sweet_a and_o save_a hold_v forth_o our_o freedom_n from_o the_o law_n as_o a_o covenant_n of_o work_n rom._n 7.4_o and_o from_o the_o curse_n thereof_o gal._n 3.13_o from_o the_o dominion_n of_o satan_n heb._n 2.14_o 15._o the_o terror_n and_o allurement_n of_o the_o world_n gal._n
oftentimes_o a_o burden_n to_o their_o corrupt_a nature_n jer._n 23.33_o yet_o must_v not_o the_o lord_n minister_n weary_a to_o repeat_v and_o inculcate_v one_o and_o the_o same_o truth_n to_o they_o not_o know_v when_o life_n and_o power_n from_o god_n may_v accompany_v that_o truth_n to_o their_o heart_n which_o have_v be_v often_o tell_v they_o before_o and_o as_o often_o slight_v by_o they_o see_v philip._n 3.1_o for_o this_o apostle_n press_v the_o same_o truth_n upon_o the_o hebrew_n which_o he_o know_v paul_n have_v press_v before_o upon_o they_o and_o upon_o all_o other_o in_o all_o his_o epistle_n which_o be_v all_o intend_a for_o the_o common_a good_a of_o the_o whole_a church_n in_o all_o age_n as_o also_o in_o all_o his_o epistle_n speak_v in_o they_o of_o these_o thing_n 2._o it_o have_v please_v the_o lord_n so_o to_o express_v some_o part_n of_o his_o mind_n in_o his_o word_n that_o the_o sharpest-sighted_a will_v not_o at_o the_o first_o nor_o easy_o take_v up_o the_o meaning_n thereof_o that_o all_o that_o study_v the_o scripture_n may_v be_v make_v humble_a in_o the_o sense_n of_o their_o own_o blindness_n earnest_n in_o employ_v christ_n for_o his_o spirit_n and_o may_v be_v quicken_v to_o pain_n in_o meditation_n compare_v one_o scripture_n with_o another_o and_o the_o use_n of_o other_o command_v mean_n that_o after_o the_o use_n of_o all_o any_o insight_n they_o get_v in_o place_n former_o dark_a to_o they_o may_v be_v the_o more_o esteem_v of_o for_o there_o be_v in_o paul_n epistle_n some_o thing_n hard_a to_o be_v understand_v 3._o although_o no_o man_n without_o special_a illumination_n from_o god_n can_v saving_o take_v up_o any_o truth_n reveal_v in_o scripture_n 1_o cor._n 2.14_o yet_o i●_n there_o much_o of_o the_o lord_n mind_n reveal_v therein_o in_o itself_o plain_a and_o easy_a to_o be_v understand_v by_o they_o who_o humble_o depend_v upon_o christ_n teach_v in_o the_o use_n of_o his_o own_o mean_n so_o that_o the_o simple_a who_o desire_v to_o know_v as_o much_o as_o may_v save_v and_o comfort_v their_o soul_n ought_v not_o to_o be_v hinder_v or_o discourage_v in_o the_o study_n of_o the_o scripture_n in_o which_o the_o apostle_n say_v only_o there_o be_v some_o thing_n hard_a to_o be_v understand_v import_v that_o there_o be_v therein_o many_o thing_n plain_a and_o such_o as_o may_v be_v easy_o understand_v 4._o those_o truth_n which_o be_v most_o dark_o propound_v in_o scripture_n be_v not_o impossible_a to_o be_v understand_v if_o man_n will_v serious_o exercise_v their_o wit_n about_o they_o and_o humble_o employ_v christ_n for_o understanding_n as_o the_o saint_n have_v do_v psal_n 119.33_o 34_o 97._o for_o the_o apostle_n say_v only_o there_o be_v some_o thing_n hard_a import_v not_o only_o that_o there_o be_v many_o thing_n plain_a but_o also_o that_o there_o be_v nothing_o impossible_a to_o be_v understand_v 5_o although_o humane_a learning_n be_v sanctify_v in_o the_o use_n thereof_o may_v prove_v a_o bless_a mean_n of_o fit_v man_n for_o the_o service_n of_o god_n dan._n 1.17_o act._n 7.22_o and_o 22.3_o yet_o it_o be_v not_o so_o much_o the_o want_n thereof_o nor_o yet_o any_o obscurity_n that_o be_v in_o the_o scripture_n which_o cause_v man_n dangerous_o to_o mistake_v and_o wrest_v the_o word_n of_o god_n as_o that_o man_n will_v not_o become_v humble_a disciple_n of_o christ_n renounce_v their_o own_o wit_n and_o give_v themselves_o up_o to_o christ_n teach_n for_o the_o word_n here_o in_o the_o original_a unlearned_a be_v not_o that_o which_o be_v make_v use_n of_o in_o scripture_n act._n 4.13_o to_o signify_v the_o want_n of_o humane_a literature_n but_o it_o be_v a_o word_n that_o signify_v to_o be_v undisciple_v or_o not_o teach_v by_o jesus_n christ_n in_o which_o sense_n they_o that_o be_v unlearned_a do_v wrest_v the_o scripture_n 6._o another_o special_a cause_n of_o wrest_v and_o mistake_v these_o thing_n in_o scripture_n which_o be_v hard_a to_o be_v understand_v be_v that_o man_n labour_v not_o to_o fix_v themselves_o in_o the_o knowledge_n love_n and_o practice_n of_o truth_n that_o be_v plain_a but_o have_v their_o heart_n distract_v with_o the_o care_n and_o pleasure_n of_o this_o present_a world_n for_o it_o be_v they_o that_o be_v unstable_a in_o this_o sense_n that_o wrest_v the_o scripture_n 7._o to_o wrest_v the_o scripture_n be_v to_o endeavour_v to_o force_v they_o to_o speak_v contrary_a to_o the_o intent_n of_o the_o spirit_n that_o indict_v they_o in_o defence_n of_o vile_a error_n or_o profane_a practice_n for_o there_o be_v a_o metaphor_n in_o the_o word_n which_o be_v translate_v wrest_v take_v from_o those_o who_o by_o torture_n labour_n to_o compel_v the_o innocent_a to_o speak_v against_o their_o mind_n 8._o they_o that_o wrest_v one_o plate_n of_o scripture_n will_v ready_o wrest_v many_o more_o there_o be_v a_o connexion_n between_o one_o error_n and_o another_o as_o there_o be_v between_o one_o truth_n and_o another_o for_o they_o that_o wrest_v paul_n epistle_n they_o wrest_v also_o other_o scripture_n 9_o the_o hazard_n of_o man_n force_v a_o sense_n of_o their_o own_o upon_o the_o scripture_n contrary_a to_o the_o mind_n of_o the_o spirit_n that_o indict_v they_o be_v no_o less_o than_o the_o everlasting_a destruction_n of_o they_o that_o do_v it_o for_o they_o that_o wrest_v the_o scripture_n do_v it_o to_o their_o own_o destruction_n verse_n 17._o you_o therefore_o beloved_n see_v you_o know_v these_o thing_n before_o beware_v lest_o you_o also_o be_v lead_v away_o with_o the_o error_n of_o the_o wicked_a fall_v from_o your_o own_o steadfastness_n the_o five_o use_n of_o the_o apostle_n former_a doctrine_n be_v a_o exhortation_n to_o constancy_n the_o sum_n whereof_o be_v that_o since_o they_o have_v be_v clear_o forewarn_v of_o their_o spiritual_a danger_n and_o inform_v concern_v the_o remedy_n thereof_o they_o shall_v be_v the_o more_o wary_a lest_o they_o be_v draw_v away_o from_o that_o way_n of_o truth_n and_o holiness_n wherein_o they_o have_v be_v through_o the_o lord_n grace_n in_o some_o good_a measure_n establish_v hence_o learn_v 1._o clear_a forewarning_n of_o spiritual_a danger_n and_o information_n concern_v the_o remedy_n thereof_o do_v lay_v upon_o the_o lord_n people_n strong_a obligation_n to_o watchfulness_n it_o be_v a_o great_a aggravation_n of_o their_o guiltiness_n if_o after_o these_o they_o be_v ensnare_v for_o the_o apostle_n make_v the_o foreknowledge_n they_o have_v of_o these_o thing_n by_o his_o former_a doctrine_n a_o special_a motive_n to_o watchfulness_n wherefore_o beloved_n see_v you_o know_v these_o thing_n before_o beware_v 2._o there_o be_v no_o error_n nor_o temptation_n so_o gross_a that_o have_v overtake_v other_o whereof_o those_o that_o be_v dear_o belove_v of_o god_n and_o his_o saint_n ought_v not_o to_o entertain_v so_o much_o fear_n as_o to_o make_v they_o very_o strict_a in_o watch_v lest_o they_o be_v ensnare_v with_o the_o same_o consider_v that_o there_o be_v a_o friend_n to_o these_o in_o their_o unmortified_a part_n beloved_n beware_v lest_o you_o also_o be_v lead_v away_o with_o the_o error_n of_o the_o wicked_a 3._o although_o the_o lord_n people_n can_v neither_o total_o nor_o final_o fall_v away_o from_o truth_n or_o holiness_n joh._n 17.11_o 12._o yet_o those_o who_o have_v be_v in_o some_o good_a measure_n establish_v in_o the_o knowledge_n of_o the_o truth_n and_o practice_n of_o holy_a duty_n may_v for_o a_o time_n and_o in_o a_o great_a measure_n fall_v from_o both_o as_o be_v import_v in_o this_o warning_n beware_v lest_o you_o also_o be_v lead_v away_o with_o the_o error_n of_o the_o wicked_a fall_n 4._o the_o possibility_n of_o believer_n fall_v for_o a_o time_n shall_v provoke_v they_o to_o much_o circumspection_n and_o as_o the_o word_n here_o signify_v to_o keep_v very_o strict_a watch_n over_o themselves_o which_o exercise_n the_o lord_n have_v appoint_v to_o be_v a_o special_a mean_n of_o his_o people_n preservation_n beware_v lest_o you_o also_o be_v let_v away_o with_o the_o error_n of_o the_o wicked_a fall_n 5._o the_o lord_n people_n have_v a_o steadfastness_n proper_a to_o themselves_o which_o no_o hypocrite_n can_v attain_v unto_o whereby_o they_o do_v adhere_v to_o the_o truth_n and_o way_n of_o christ_n not_o for_o the_o applause_n or_o example_n of_o other_o or_o any_o worldly_a advantage_n whatsoever_o but_o because_o their_o mind_n be_v enlighten_v to_o know_v and_o their_o heart_n renew_v to_o believe_v and_o love_v the_o truth_n for_o its_o own_o worth_n and_o for_o his_o authority_n that_o reveal_v it_o for_o the_o word_n in_o the_o original_a be_v beware_v lest_o you_o fall_v from_o your_o own_o proper_a steadfastness_n verse_n 18._o but_o grow_v in_o grace_n and_o in_o the_o knowledge_n of_o our_o lord_n and_o saviour_n jesus_n christ_n to_o he_o be_v glory_n both_o now_o and_o for_o ever_o amen_n the_o six_o and_o last_o use_n of_o the_o former_a doctrine_n be_v a_o exhortation_n to_o the_o study_n of_o a_o continual_a growth_n and_o progress_n in_o grace_n and_o knowledge_n and_o this_o the_o apostle_n press_v as_o a_o special_a mean_n to_o attain_v to_o that_o which_o he_o press_v in_o the_o former_a use_n to_o wit_n steadfastness_n and_o close_v with_o a_o song_n of_o praise_n to_o jesus_n christ_n hence_o learn_v 1._o it_o be_v not_o enough_o for_o the_o lord_n people_n to_o maintain_v that_o measure_n of_o grace_n which_o they_o have_v already_o attain_v but_o they_o must_v labour_v to_o find_v the_o lively_a exercise_n and_o daily_a growth_n of_o every_o grace_n for_o the_o apostle_n have_v exhort_v to_o steadfastness_n in_o what_o they_o have_v already_o attain_v do_v add_v this_o but_o grow_v in_o grace_n 2._o growth_n in_o grace_n be_v a_o special_a preservative_n from_o apostasy_n there_o be_v no_o possibility_n to_o keep_v what_o we_o have_v attain_v except_o it_o be_v improven_v and_o be_v upon_o the_o grow_a hand_n mat._n 25.29_o for_o this_o exhortation_n be_v add_v to_o the_o former_a as_o a_o special_a mean_n of_o attain_v to_o steadfastness_n grow_v in_o grace_n etc._n etc._n 3._o they_o that_o will_v have_v grace_n to_o thrive_v in_o their_o heart_n must_v labour_v for_o a_o daily_a increase_n of_o knowledge_n in_o their_o mind_n concern_v christ_n sovereignty_n his_o office_n and_o the_o benefit_n we_o have_v by_o he_o for_o as_o growth_n in_o grace_n be_v here_o press_v as_o a_o special_a mean_n to_o steadfastness_n so_o growth_n in_o knowledge_n be_v press_v as_o a_o special_a mean_n of_o attain_v to_o growth_n in_o grace_n but_o grow_v in_o grace_n and_o in_o the_o knowledge_n of_o our_o lord_n and_o saviour_n jesus_n christ_n 4._o it_o be_v the_o duty_n of_o all_o who_o have_v any_o right_a thought_n of_o christ_n to_o break_v forth_o some_o way_n in_o his_o praise_n and_o to_o ascribe_v glory_n to_o he_o who_o be_v the_o sovereign_a lord_n of_o heaven_n and_o earth_n be_v become_v the_o saviour_n of_o sinner_n and_o have_v clothe_v himself_o with_o office_n answerable_a to_o all_o their_o necessity_n as_o be_v import_v in_o the_o name_n of_o christ_n that_o be_v here_o for_o the_o apostle_n that_o know_v he_o well_o to_o be_v such_o a_o one_o take_v up_o the_o song_n which_o all_o that_o know_v he_o shall_v follow_v and_o keep_v up_o in_o their_o heart_n to_o he_o be_v glory_n 5._o praise_n be_v a_o duty_n wherewith_o all_o our_o other_o duty_n shall_v be_v close_v both_o for_o the_o help_n we_o find_v in_o they_o and_o for_o the_o pardon_n we_o believe_v to_o obtain_v for_o our_o fail_n upon_o both_o which_o ground_n the_o apostle_n close_v his_o epistle_n with_o praise_n to_o he_o be_v glory_n 6._o praise_n be_v a_o exercise_n for_o the_o discharge_n whereof_o not_o only_o all_o our_o time_n but_o the_o long_a age_n or_o day_n of_o eternity_n as_o the_o word_n here_o signify_v be_v little_a enough_o to_o he_o be_v glory_n both_o now_o and_o for_o ever_o amen_n finis_fw-la
and_o serious_a searcher_n in_o the_o nature_n of_o this_o salvation_n hold_v forth_o in_o the_o gospel_n the_o prophet_n be_v who_o do_v foretell_v of_o a_o more_o clear_a manifestation_n of_o the_o doctrine_n concern_v be_v and_o of_o a_o more_o plentiful_a outletting_a of_o the_o grace_n of_o the_o spirit_n upon_o those_o who_o live_v after_o christ_n incarnation_n than_o have_v be_v upon_o those_o who_o live_v before_o and_o this_o may_v be_v take_v for_o a_o argument_n by_o itself_o to_o move_v those_o upon_o who_o that_o grace_n be_v bestow_v cheerful_o to_o adhere_v to_o the_o gospel_n notwithstanding_o of_o suffering_n for_o it_o hence_o learn_v 1._o the_o way_n of_o salvation_n by_o jesus_n christ_n which_o be_v hold_v forth_o in_o the_o new_a testament_n be_v no_o new_a light_n break_v up_o since_o christ_n day_n in_o the_o flesh_n but_o be_v the_o very_a same_o in_o substance_n which_o be_v know_v to_o the_o prophet_n under_o the_o old_a testament_n and_o by_o they_o make_v know_v to_o the_o church_n then_o although_o the_o doctrine_n of_o salvation_n be_v now_o clear_a and_o the_o gift_n and_o grace_n of_o the_o spirit_n more_o plentiful_o dispense_v since_o the_o price_n of_o redemption_n be_v actual_o pay_v for_o which_o god_n give_v out_o upon_o trust_n grace_n and_o glory_n to_o the_o elect_a before_o yet_o the_o way_n of_o salvation_n then_o and_o now_o be_v one_o and_o the_o same_o for_o substance_n for_o of_o that_o salvation_n which_o believer_n in_o christ_n do_v by_o faith_n now_o under_o the_o gospel_n receive_v the_o apostle_n here_o speak_v of_o which_o salvation_n the_o prophet_n have_v inquire_v etc._n etc._n 2._o so_o sweet_a and_o ravish_a a_o study_n be_v that_o way_n of_o salvation_n through_o christ_n incarnate_a that_o the_o more_o knowledge_n thereof_o any_o attain_n unto_o they_o will_v still_o be_v the_o more_o and_o more_o inquisitive_a and_o diligent_a after_o a_o further_a measure_n of_o it_o so_o that_o those_o can_v know_v nothing_o of_o christ_n saving_o who_o satisfy_v themselves_o with_o any_o measure_n of_o the_o knowledge_n of_o he_o that_o they_o have_v already_o attain_v unto_o for_o even_o the_o prophet_n after_o some_o insight_n in_o that_o way_n partly_o by_o immediate_a revelation_n and_o partly_o by_o their_o former_a diligence_n be_v not_o take_v off_o from_o the_o painful_a use_n of_o ordinary_a mean_n such_o as_o read_n meditation_n prayer_n and_o careful_a pry_n into_o the_o meaning_n of_o those_o manifold_a type_n which_o hold_v forth_o that_o way_n of_o salvation_n through_o the_o messiah_n to_o come_v and_o the_o benefit_n which_o the_o redeem_a have_v by_o he_o but_o do_v renew_v and_o double_v their_o diligence_n as_o be_v import_v by_o the_o several_a word_n here_o to_o one_o purpose_n of_o which_o salvation_n the_o prophet_n have_v inquire_v and_o search_v diligent_o 3._o all_o that_o deliver_v the_o mind_n of_o god_n to_o his_o people_n aught_o to_o be_v affectionate_a and_o serious_a student_n of_o it_o themselves_o that_o so_o they_o may_v make_v the_o truth_n they_o be_v to_o deliver_v their_o own_o and_o have_v their_o heart_n affect_v therewith_o psal_n 45.1_o so_o may_v they_o expect_v it_o shall_v be_v more_o blessed_v to_o take_v impression_n and_o have_v effect_n upon_o the_o hearer_n for_o the_o word_n here_o express_v the_o prophet_n pain_n in_o the_o study_n of_o that_o way_n of_o salvation_n through_o christ_n do_v import_n that_o never_o do_v hunter_n with_o great_a eagerness_n and_o delight_n pursue_v their_o game_n nor_o those_o that_o dig_v in_o the_o earth_n where_o they_o know_v some_o rich_a treasure_n be_v to_o be_v have_v more_o serious_o apply_v themselves_o to_o that_o exercise_n than_o the_o prophet_n do_v insist_v upon_o this_o study_n of_o which_o salvation_n the_o prophet_n have_v inquire_v and_o search_v diligent_o who_o prophesy_v before_o 4._o the_o prime_a subject_a both_o of_o the_o old_a and_o new_a testament_n whereupon_o all_o the_o minister_n of_o christ_n shall_v insist_v with_o his_o people_n be_v the_o free_a grace_n of_o god_n manifest_v in_o give_v christ_n for_o sinner_n in_o his_o powerful_a draw_v of_o their_o heart_n to_o close_v with_o he_o for_o pardon_v grace_n and_o for_o renew_v of_o their_o nature_n by_o inherent_a grace_n and_o so_o oblige_v and_o enable_v they_o to_o walk_v worthy_a of_o that_o grace_n of_o god_n for_o the_o sum_n of_o the_o prophet_n work_n in_o which_o the_o apostle_n concur_v as_o the_o follow_a word_n do_v make_v clear_a be_v to_o prophesy_v of_o the_o grace_n that_o shall_v come_v unto_o we_o 5._o although_o this_o grace_n be_v make_v know_v and_o communicate_v to_o they_o who_o live_v before_o christ_n incarnation_n act._n 10.43_o yet_o it_o be_v in_o a_o special_a manner_n come_v unto_o those_o who_o live_v after_o in_o regard_n of_o a_o clear_a manifestation_n of_o the_o doctrine_n of_o god_n grace_n 2_o cor._n 3.18_o a_o more_o plentiful_a communication_n of_o the_o gift_n and_o grace_n of_o his_o spirit_n act._n 2.16_o and_o that_o both_o of_o these_o be_v extend_v to_o some_o of_o all_o nation_n col._n 3.11_o in_o which_o respect_v it_o be_v here_o call_v the_o grace_n come_v unto_o we_o verse_n 11._o search_v what_o or_o what_o manner_n of_o time_n the_o spirit_n of_o christ_n which_o be_v in_o they_o do_v signify_v when_o it_o testify_v beforehand_o the_o suffering_n of_o christ_n and_o the_o glory_n that_o shall_v follow_v the_o apostle_n clear_v yet_o further_o the_o prophet_n pain_n in_o the_o study_n of_o that_o way_n of_o salvation_n through_o christ_n incarnate_a show_v that_o they_o be_v exceed_o desirous_a and_o diligent_a to_o have_v know_v the_o particular_a time_n of_o his_o come_n in_o the_o flesh_n and_o to_o have_v know_v more_o clear_o than_o they_o do_v how_o happy_a those_o time_n behove_v to_o be_v whereof_o the_o spirit_n of_o christ_n who_o be_v even_o then_o in_o a_o extraordinary_a way_n present_a with_o they_o do_v mean_a when_o he_o move_v they_o to_o describe_v so_o long_o beforehand_o the_o humiliation_n or_o suffering_n of_o the_o messiah_n and_o his_o exaltation_n or_o the_o glorious_a effect_n that_o be_v to_o follow_v upon_o his_o suffering_n to_o himself_o and_z his_o redeemed_z once_o therefore_o they_o who_o live_v after_o his_o incarnation_n ought_v cheerful_o and_o constant_o to_o adhere_v to_o the_o gospel_n notwithstanding_o of_o all_o their_o suffering_n hence_o learn_v 1._o it_o be_v the_o way_n which_o the_o lord_n usual_o keep_v with_o the_o dear_a of_o his_o servant_n to_o let_v out_o his_o mind_n to_o they_o by_o little_a and_o little_a to_o make_v plain_a some_o thing_n to_o they_o and_o keep_v up_o other_o thing_n from_o they_o that_o he_o may_v humble_v they_o quicken_v they_o to_o diligence_n and_o keep_v up_o correspondence_n betwixt_o himself_o and_o they_o for_o though_o it_o be_v make_v clear_a to_o the_o prophet_n that_o christ_n be_v to_o be_v incarnate_a that_o much_o grace_n shall_v be_v in_o his_o day_n and_o more_o bless_a time_n than_o any_o they_o have_v see_v and_o however_o all_o of_o they_o have_v some_o intimation_n of_o the_o time_n of_o his_o incarnation_n by_o jacob_n pprophecy_n gen._n 49.10_o and_o those_o of_o they_o who_o live_v after_o the_o captivity_n by_o daniel_n pprophecy_n dan._n 9.24_o yet_o they_o be_v keep_v dark_a concern_v the_o particular_a time_n when_o he_o shall_v come_v and_o the_o distinct_a quality_n of_o his_o time_n what_o form_n of_o worship_n and_o way_n of_o administration_n of_o gospel-ordinance_n there_o shall_v be_v then_o therefore_o be_v they_o here_o set_v forth_o search_v what_o or_o what_o manner_n of_o time_n the_o spirit_n of_o christ_n which_o be_v in_o they_o do_v signify_v etc._n etc._n 2._o the_o holy_a spirit_n be_v a_o person_n subsist_v distinct_a from_o the_o father_n and_o the_o son_n proceed_v from_o both_o joh._n 15.26_o and_o true_a god_n equal_a to_o both_o to_o who_o future_a event_n be_v know_v as_o if_o they_o be_v actual_o exist_v for_o here_o he_o be_v call_v the_o spirit_n of_o christ_n and_o be_v say_v to_o testify_v beforehand_o the_o suffering_n of_o christ_n 3._o jesus_n christ_n the_o second_o person_n of_o the_o trinity_n have_v be_v before_o his_o incarnation_n actual_o exercise_v the_o office_n of_o mediatorship_n reveal_v to_o the_o church_n in_o all_o age_n the_o way_n of_o salvation_n through_o his_o suffering_n for_o it_o be_v the_o spirit_n of_o the_o son_n of_o god_n that_o dwell_v in_o the_o prophet_n and_o make_v know_v to_o they_o those_o thing_n concern_v the_o mediator_n whereof_o they_o do_v prophesy_v the_o spirit_n of_o christ_n in_o they_o testify_v beforehand_o 4._o the_o chief_a thing_n which_o the_o spirit_n of_o christ_n do_v manifest_a to_o the_o prophet_n and_o wherewith_o their_o prime_a study_n be_v take_v up_o be_v the_o
suffering_n of_o the_o mediator_n and_o the_o glory_n that_o shall_v follow_v thereupon_o to_o he_o and_o he_o redeem_v once_o it_o be_v the_o end_n of_o all_o the_o discovery_n of_o sin_n and_o threaten_n of_o wrath_n that_o be_v in_o the_o law_n to_o point_v out_o the_o necessity_n of_o his_o satisfaction_n rom._n 10.3_o and_o the_o very_a substance_n and_o signification_n of_o all_o the_o type_n and_o sacrifice_n to_o point_v forth_o his_o suffering_n and_o the_o glorious_a effect_n thereof_o heb._n 10.1_o for_o the_o apostle_n comprise_v 〈◊〉_d substance_n of_o that_o which_o the_o spirit_n of_o christ_n in_o the_o prophet_n do_v signify_v to_o they_o and_o testify_v to_o the_o church_n by_o they_o in_o these_o two_o the_o suffering_n of_o christ_n and_o the_o glory_n that_o shall_v follow_v 5._o this_o method_n be_v keep_v with_o christ_n the_o head_n and_o none_o of_o his_o member_n shall_v expect_v to_o have_v it_o change_v with_o they_o that_o he_o be_v first_o to_o suffer_v and_o then_o glory_n be_v to_o follow_v so_o that_o the_o jew_n have_v no_o warrant_n from_o any_o thing_n in_o the_o prophet_n to_o expect_v a_o messiah_n in_o worldly_a glory_n without_o suffer_v for_o this_o be_v the_o compend_n of_o all_o that_o the_o prophet_n speak_v of_o the_o messiah_n at_o the_o direction_n of_o his_o spirit_n in_o they_o they_o testify_v beforehand_o of_o the_o suffering_n of_o christ_n and_o the_o glory_n that_o shall_v follow_v verse_n 12._o unto_o who_o it_o be_v reveal_v that_o not_o unto_o themselves_o but_o unto_o we_o they_o do_v minister_v the_o thing_n which_o be_v now_o report_v unto_o you_o by_o they_o that_o have_v preach_v the_o gospel_n unto_o you_o with_o the_o holy_a ghost_n send_v down_o from_o heaven_n which_o thing_n the_o angel_n desire_v to_o look_v into_o that_o the_o apostle_n may_v yet_o further_o commend_v the_o truth_n of_o the_o gospel_n as_o worthy_a to_o be_v rejoice_v in_o and_o suffer_v for_o and_o may_v prove_v the_o state_n of_o believer_n now_o to_o be_v in_o some_o respect_v more_o excellent_a than_o that_o of_o the_o ancient_a prophet_n he_o show_v 1._o what_o success_n the_o prophet_n have_v of_o their_o pain_n although_o they_o get_v not_o the_o very_a thing_n they_o do_v so_o much_o desire_n which_o be_v not_o only_o to_o have_v know_v the_o time_n of_o christ_n come_v in_o the_o flesh_n but_o to_o have_v live_v to_o see_v it_o as_o be_v clear_a by_o compare_v the_o former_a verse_n with_o luk._n 10.24_o yet_o the_o lord_n condescend_v to_o give_v they_o such_o a_o answer_n of_o their_o pain_n as_o may_v quiet_v their_o heart_n to_o wit_n that_o they_o themselves_o be_v not_o to_o see_v the_o temporal_a accomplishment_n of_o their_o own_o prophecy_n that_o be_v reserve_v for_o they_o who_o be_v to_o live_v after_o christ_n incarnation_n 2._o he_o show_v that_o what_o the_o prophet_n have_v foretell_v be_v now_o much_o clear_v to_o the_o christian_a church_n by_o the_o apostle_n who_o be_v for_o that_o end_n endue_v with_o a_o extraordinary_a measure_n of_o the_o holy_a spirit_n send_v down_o upon_o they_o in_o the_o day_n of_o pentecost_n and_o 3._o he_o affirm_v that_o this_o way_n of_o salvation_n through_o christ_n already_o incarnate_a as_o it_o be_v now_o clear_v and_o administer_v under_o the_o gospel_n be_v so_o ravish_v a_o subject_n that_o it_o take_v up_o the_o delight_n and_o study_v of_o the_o angel_n of_o heaven_n to_o pry_v in_o upon_o it_o every_o one_o of_o which_o do_v infer_v that_o conclusion_n which_o be_v to_o be_v understand_v as_o the_o apostle_n scope_n that_o therefore_o believer_n now_o ought_v cheerful_o to_o adhere_v to_o the_o truth_n of_o the_o gospel_n what_o ever_o they_o may_v suffer_v for_o so_o do_v hence_o learn_v 1._o although_o the_o lord_n do_v not_o always_o answer_v the_o approven_v pain_n of_o his_o servant_n with_o desire_a satisfaction_n in_o the_o particular_a that_o they_o aim_v at_o yet_o it_o be_v not_o his_o way_n to_o leave_v they_o without_o such_o a_o answer_n and_o fruit_n of_o their_o pain_n as_o shall_v be_v more_o for_o his_o honour_n their_o true_a good_a and_o the_o good_a of_o other_o also_o than_o if_o they_o have_v receive_v that_o satisfaction_n which_o they_o so_o much_o desire_v for_o though_o the_o prophet_n who_o be_v approven_v in_o their_o search_n after_o the_o time_n of_o christ_n manifestation_n in_o the_o flesh_n there_o be_v somewhat_o concern_v it_o reveal_v gen._n 49.10_o dan._n 9.24_o and_o there_o be_v nowhere_o a_o discharge_n of_o enquiry_n after_o that_o time_n as_o there_o be_v after_o the_o time_n of_o christ_n second_o come_v mat._n 24.36_o 1_o thess_n 5.1_o get_v not_o their_o desire_a satisfaction_n either_o by_o see_v or_o know_v particular_o the_o time_n of_o christ_n incarnation_n yet_o they_o be_v not_o leave_v without_o a_o answer_n from_o their_o master_n but_o have_v as_o much_o of_o his_o mind_n manifest_v to_o they_o as_o may_v quiet_v their_o mind_n unto_o who_o it_o be_v reveal_v that_o not_o unto_o themselves_o but_o unto_o we_o they_o do_v minister_v 2._o it_o ought_v to_o be_v no_o discouragement_n to_o christ_n servant_n that_o he_o put_v they_o to_o much_o pain_n in_o his_o service_n for_o the_o good_a of_o other_o withhold_v from_o they_o in_o the_o mean_a time_n that_o measure_n of_o satisfaction_n which_o he_o mind_v to_o bestow_v upon_o other_o by_o their_o pain_n it_o be_v a_o sufficient_a encouragement_n to_o any_o of_o his_o servant_n or_o people_n to_o know_v that_o he_o honour_v they_o to_o serve_v he_o acceptable_o and_o that_o he_o will_v make_v up_o all_o their_o present_a loss_n when_o he_o and_o they_o meet_v for_o to_o the_o prophet_n who_o be_v very_o laborious_a and_o assiduous_a as_o the_o bee_n who_o make_v sweet_a honey_n for_o other_o and_o taste_v but_o spare_o of_o it_o themselves_o it_o be_v reveal_v as_o a_o sufficient_a reward_n of_o all_o their_o pain_n that_o not_o unto_o themselves_o but_o unto_o we_o they_o do_v minister_v 3._o although_o the_o fruit_n of_o christ_n death_n have_v ever_o be_v since_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o world_n forthcoming_a for_o the_o salvation_n and_o comfort_n of_o the_o elect_n rev._n 13.8_o yet_o the_o advantage_n of_o those_o who_o live_v after_o his_o incarnation_n be_v in_o some_o respect_n great_a than_o they_o who_o live_v before_o and_o that_o beside_o other_o reason_n because_o the_o truth_n of_o thing_n reveal_v then_o be_v now_o more_o evident_a to_o those_o who_o may_v compare_v prophecy_n with_o their_o accomplishment_n for_o it_o be_v here_o set_v down_o as_o some_o piece_n of_o disadvantage_n to_o the_o prophet_n that_o not_o unto_o themselves_o but_o unto_o we_o they_o do_v minister_v the_o thing_n 4._o there_o be_v a_o complete_a harmony_n betwixt_o the_o scripture_n of_o the_o old_a and_o new_a testament_n what_o ever_o seem_v contradiction_n may_v be_v apprehend_v by_o blind_a mind_n to_o be_v betwixt_o they_o for_o the_o apostle_n affirm_v here_o that_o the_o prophet_n do_v minister_v the_o same_o thing_n which_o be_v now_o report_v by_o they_o that_o have_v preach_v the_o gospel_n 5._o to_o make_v the_o truth_n lovely_a to_o we_o and_o to_o confirm_v we_o in_o adhere_v to_o it_o under_o suffering_n it_o be_v necessary_a that_o the_o spirit_n of_o jesus_n be_v acknowledge_v to_o be_v with_o the_o messenger_n make_v know_v to_o he_o the_o truth_n and_o enable_v he_o to_o deliver_v it_o although_o the_o way_n of_o the_o spirit_n presence_n with_o and_o assistance_n of_o extraordinary_a messenger_n be_v different_a from_o his_o way_n with_o ordinary_a minister_n yet_o if_o it_o be_v necessary_a to_o be_v acknowledge_v in_o order_n to_o people_n profit_v by_o the_o one_o it_o be_v much_o more_o necessary_a for_o their_o profit_v by_o the_o other_o therefore_o to_o make_v the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o gospel_n lovely_a to_o people_n and_o to_o confirm_v they_o in_o adhere_v to_o it_o notwithstanding_o of_o suffering_n the_o apostle_n say_v that_o the_o same_o thing_n which_o the_o spirit_n of_o christ_n do_v signify_v to_o the_o prophet_n be_v report_v by_o they_o that_o preach_v the_o gospel_n to_o they_o with_o the_o holy_a ghost_n send_v down_o from_o heaven_n 6._o although_o the_o glorify_a angel_n can_v have_v no_o such_o desire_n as_o have_v any_o painful_a unsatisfaction_n with_o they_o see_v they_o live_v in_o the_o bless_a vision_n and_o constant_a fruition_n of_o god_n mat._n 18.10_o yet_o so_o excellent_a and_o ravish_a a_o mystery_n be_v this_o plot_n of_o the_o salvation_n of_o lose_a sinner_n through_o christ_n incarnate_a which_o the_o gospel_n manifest_v that_o they_o be_v no_o less_o humble_a and_o accurate_a student_n of_o it_o and_o no_o less_o serious_o take_v up_o with_o the_o contemplation_n of_o the_o way_n of_o god_n reconcile_n himself_o